<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<div class="image"><ANTIMG src="images/icover.jpg" width-obs="323" height-obs="480" alt="cover" title="" /></div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<h1>ASTOUNDING</h1>
<h2 style="margin-top: -1em;">STORIES<br/> OF SUPER-SCIENCE<br/> <small>20¢</small></h2>
<h3><i>On Sale the First Thursday of Each Month</i></h3>
<div class="center">
<table border="0" summary="toc header" width="90%">
<tr><td align="left" style="width: 30%;">W. M. CLAYTON, Publisher</td><td align="center">HARRY BATES, Editor</td><td align="right" style="width: 30%;">DOUGLAS M. DOLD, Consulting Editor</td></tr>
</table></div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<div class="u"> </div>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="illodrop"><ANTIMG src="images/atoc.png" width-obs="122" height-obs="200" alt="" title="" /></div>
<div class="center" style="font-size: 120%; font-weight: bold;">The Clayton Standard on a Magazine Guarantees:</div>
<div class="blockquote">
<p><i>That</i> the stories therein are clean, interesting, vivid; by leading writers of the day and purchased
under conditions approved by the Authors' League of America;</p>
<p><i>That</i> such magazines are manufactured in Union shops by American workmen;</p>
<p><i>That</i> each newsdealer and agent is insured a fair profit;</p>
<p><i>That</i> an intelligent censorship guards their advertising pages.</p>
</div>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="center"><i>The other Clayton magazines are</i>:<br/>
<br/>
ACE-HIGH MAGAZINE, RANCH ROMANCES, COWBOY STORIES, CLUES, FIVE-NOVELS<br/>
MONTHLY, WIDE WORLD ADVENTURES, ALL STAR DETECTIVE STORIES, FLYERS,<br/>
RANGELAND LOVE STORY MAGAZINE, SKY-HIGH LIBRARY MAGAZINE,<br/>
WESTERN ADVENTURES, MISS 1930, <i>and</i> FOREST AND STREAM</div>
<div class="center"><br/><i>More Than Two Million Copies Required to Supply the Monthly Demand for Clayton Magazines.</i></div>
<div class="u" style="margin-top: .75em;"> </div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<div class="center">
<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="table of contents header" width="100%">
<tr><td align="left">VOL. II, No. 1</td><td align="center" class="ltext">CONTENTS</td><td align="right">APRIL, 1930</td></tr>
</table></div>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="center">
<table border="0" cellpadding="6" cellspacing="4" summary="table of contents" width="100%">
<tr><td align="left" style="width: 45%;">COVER DESIGN</td><td align="left" style="width: 45%;">H. W. WESSOLOWSKI</td><td style="width: 10%;"></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left" colspan="2"><span style="padding-left: 3em;"><i>Painted in Water-colors from a Scene in "Monsters of Moyen."</i></span></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left">THE MAN WHO WAS DEAD</td><td align="left">THOMAS H. KNIGHT</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#The_Man_Who_Was_Dead">9</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left" colspan="2"><span style="padding-left: 3em;"><i>As Jerry's Eyes Fell on the Creature's Head, He Shuddered—for the Face Was Nothing
but Bone, with Dull-brown Skin Stretched Taut over It. A Skeleton That Was Alive!</i></span></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left">MONSTERS OF MOYEN</td><td align="left">ARTHUR J. BURKS</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Monsters_of_Moyen">18</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left" colspan="2"><span style="padding-left: 3em;"><i>"The Western World Shall be Next!" Was the Dread Ultimatum of the Half-monster, Half-god Moyen.</i></span></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left">VAMPIRES OF VENUS</td><td align="left">ANTHONY PELCHER</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Vampires_of_Venus">47</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left" colspan="2"><span style="padding-left: 3em;"><i>Leslie Larner, an Entomologist Borrowed from the Earth, Pits Himself Against the
Night-flying Vampires That Are Ravaging the Inhabitants of Venus.</i></span></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left">BRIGANDS OF THE MOON</td><td align="left">RAY CUMMINGS</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Brigands_of_the_Moon">60</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left" colspan="2"><span style="padding-left: 3em;"><i>Out of Awful Space Tumbled the Space-ship Planetara Towards the Moon, Her
Officers Dead, With Bandits at Her Helm—and the Controls Out of Order!</i></span></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left">THE SOUL SNATCHER</td><td align="left">TOM CURRY</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#The_Soul-Snatcher">101</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left" colspan="2"><span style="padding-left: 3em;"><i>From Twenty Miles Away Stabbed the "Atom-filtering" Rays to Allen Baker in His Cell in the Death House.</i></span></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left">THE RAY OF MADNESS</td><td align="left">CAPTAIN S. P. MEEK</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#The_Ray_of_Madness">112</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left" colspan="2"><span style="padding-left: 3em;"><i>Dr. Bird Uncovers a Dastardly Plot, Amazing in its Mechanical Ingenuity, Behind
the Apparently Trivial Eye Trouble of the President.</i></span></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left">THE READERS' CORNER</td><td align="left">ALL OF US</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#The_Readers_Corner">127</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td align="left" colspan="2"><span style="padding-left: 3em;"><i>A Meeting Place for Readers of Astounding Stories.</i></span></td></tr>
</table></div>
<div class="u" style="margin-top: .5em;"> </div>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="captionl">Single Copies, 20 Cents (In Canada, 25 Cents)</div> <div class="captionr">Yearly Subscription, $2.00</div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<p>Issued monthly by Publishers' Fiscal Corporation, 80 Lafayette St., New York, N. Y. W. M. Clayton, President;
Nathan Goldmann, Secretary. Application for entry as second-class mail pending at the Post Office at
New York, under Act of March 3, 1879. Title registered as a Trade Mark in the U. S. Patent Office. Member
Newsstand Group—Men's List. For advertising rates address E. R. Crowe & Co., Inc., 25 Vanderbilt Ave., New
York; or 225 North Michigan Ave., Chicago.</p>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<hr />
<h2 class="chapter3"><SPAN name="The_Man_Who_Was_Dead" id="The_Man_Who_Was_Dead"></SPAN>The Man Who<br/> Was Dead</h2>
<h2 class="chapter"><i>By Thomas H. Knight</i></h2>
<div class="image">
<ANTIMG src="images/i009.jpg" width-obs="544" height-obs="551" alt="" title="" /></div>
<h3 class="chapter2"><br/><i>"I was dead."</i></h3>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="sidenote">As Jerry's eyes fell on the creature's head,
he shuddered—for the face was nothing
but bone, with dull-brown skin stretched
taut over it. A skeleton that was alive!</div>
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">t</span> was a wicked night, the night I<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[9]</SPAN></span>
met the man who had died. A
bitter, heart-numbing night of
weird, shrieking wind and flying
snow. A few black hours I will never
forget.</p>
<p>"Well, Jerry,
lad!" my mother
said to me as I
pushed back from
the table and
started for my sheepskin coat and the
lantern in the corner of the room.
"Surely you're not going out a night
like this? Goodness gracious, Jerry,
it's not fit!"</p>
<p>"Can't help it, Mother," I replied.
"Got to go. You've never seen me miss
a Saturday night yet, have you now?"</p>
<p>"No. But then I've never seen a night
like this for years either. Jerry, I'm
really afraid. You may freeze before
you even get as far as—"</p>
<p>"Ah, come now,
Mother," I argued.
"They'd guy
me to death if I
didn't sit in with
the gang to-night.
They'd chaff me because it was too
cold for me to get out. But I'm no
pampered sissy, you know, and I want
to see—"</p>
<p>"Yes," she retorted bitingly, "I know.
You want to go and bask in that elegant
company. Our stove's just as good<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[10]</SPAN></span>
as the one down at that dirty old
store," continued my persistent and
anxious parent, "and it's certainly not
very flattering to think that you leave
us on a night like this to—Who'll be
there, anyway?"</p>
<p>"Oh, the usual five or six I suppose,"
I answered as I adjusted the wick of
my lantern, hearing as I did the snarl
and cut of the wind through the evergreens
in the yard.</p>
<p>"That black-whiskered sphinx, Hammersly,
will he be there?"</p>
<p>"Yes, he'll be there, I'm pretty sure."</p>
<p>"Hm-m!" she exclaimed, her expression
now carrying all the contempt for my
judgment and taste she intended it
should. "Button your coat up good
around your neck, then, if you must go
to see your precious Hammersly and
the rest of them. Have you ever heard
that man say anything yet? Does he
speak at all, Jerry?" Then her gentle
mind, not at all accustomed to hard
thoughts or contemptuous remarks,
quickly changed. "Funny thing about
that fellow," she mused. "He's got
something on his mind. Don't you
think so, Jerry?"</p>
<p>"Y-es, yes I do. And I've often wondered
what it could be. He certainly's
a queer stick. Got to admit that. Always
brooding. Good fellow all right,
and, for a 'sphinx' as you call him, likable.
But I wonder what is eating
him?"</p>
<p>"What do you suppose it could be,
Jerry boy?" questioned Mother following
me to the door, the woman of her
now completely forgetting her recent
criticisms and, perhaps, the rough
night her son was about to step into.
"Do you suppose the poor chap has a—a—broken
heart, or something like
that? A girl somewhere who jilted
him? Or maybe he loves someone he
has no right to!" she finished excitedly,
the plates in her hand rattling.</p>
<p>"Maybe it's worse than that," I ventured.
"P'r'aps—I've no right to say it—but
p'r'aps, and I've often thought it,
there's a killing he wants to forget,
and can't!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">heard</span> my mother's sharp little
"Oh!" as I shut the door behind me
and the warmth and comfort of the
room away. Outside it was worse than
the whistle of the wind through the
trees had led me to expect. Black as
pitch it was, and as cold as blazes. For
the first moment or two, though, I liked
the feel of the challenge of the night
and the racing elements, was even a
little glad I had added to the dare of
the blackness the thought of Hammersly
and his "killing." But I had not
gone far before I was wishing I did
not have to save my face by putting
in an appearance at the store that
night.</p>
<p>Every Saturday night, with the cows
comfortable in their warm barn, and
my own supper over, I was in the habit
of taking my place on the keg or box
behind the red-hot stove in Pruett's
store. To-night all the snow was being
hurled clear of the fields to block
the roads full between the old, zigzag
fences. The wind met me in great
pushing gusts, and while it flung itself
at me I would hang against it, snow to
my knees, until the blow had gone
along, when I could plunge forward
again. I was glad when I saw the
lights of the store, glad when I was
inside.</p>
<p>They met me with mock applause for
my pluck in facing the night, but for
all their sham flattery I was pleased I
had come, proud, I must admit, that I
had been able to plough my heavy way
through the drifts to reach them. I
saw at a glance that my friends were
all there, and I saw too that there was
a strange man present.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">very</span> tall man he was, gaunt
and awkward as he leaned into
the angle of the two counters, his back
to a dusty show-case. He attracted my
attention at once. Not merely because
he appeared so long and pointed and
skinny, but because, of all ridiculous
things in that frozen country, he wore
a hard derby hat! If he had not been
such a queer character it would have<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[11]</SPAN></span>
been laughable, but as it was it was—creepy.
For the man beneath that hard
hat was about as queer a looking character
as I have ever seen. I supposed
he was a visitor at the store, or a friend
of one of my friends, and that in a little
while I would be introduced. But
I was not.</p>
<p>I took my place in behind the stove,
feeling at once, though I am far from
being unsociable usually, that the man
was an intruder and would spoil the
evening. But despite his cold, dampening
presence we were soon at it,
hammer and tongs, discussing the
things that are discussed behind hospitable
stoves in country stores on bad
nights. But I could never lose sight
of the fact that the stranger standing
there, silent as the grave, was, to say
the least, a queer one. Before long I
was sure he was no friend or guest of
anyone there, and that he not only cast
a pall over me but over all of us. I
did not like it, nor did I like him. Perhaps
it would have been just as well
after all, I thought, had I heeded my
mother and stayed home.</p>
<p>Jed Counsell was the one who, innocently
enough, started the thing that
changed the evening, that had begun
so badly, into a nightmare.</p>
<p>"Jerry," he said, leaning across to
me, "thinkin' of you s'afternoon.
Readin' an article about reincarnation.
Remember we were arguin' it last
week? Well, this guy, whoever he was
I've forgot, believes in it. Says it's so.
That people <i>do</i> come back." With this
opening shot Jed sat back to await my
answer. I liked these arguments and
I liked to bear my share in them, but
now, instead of immediately answering
the challenge, I looked around to
see if any other of our circle were going
to answer Jed. Then, deciding it
was up to me, I shrugged off the
strange feeling the man in the corner
had cast over me, and prepared to view
my opinions.</p>
<p>"That's just that fellow's belief,
Jed," I said. "And just as he's got his
so have I mine. And on this subject
at least I claim my opinion is as good
as anybody's." I was just getting
nicely started, and a little forgetting
my distaste for the man in the corner,
when the fellow himself interrupted.
He left his leaning place, and came
creaking across the floor to our circle
around the store. I say he came
"creaking" for as he came he did creak.
"Shoes," I naturally, almost unconsciously
decided, though the crazy notion
was in my mind that the cracking
I heard did sound like bones and joints
and sinews badly in need of oil. The
stranger sat his groaning self down
among us, on a board lying across a
nail keg and an old chair. Only from
the corner of my eye did I see his
movement, being friendly enough, despite
my dislike, not to allow too
marked notice of his attempt to be
sociable seem inhospitable on my part.
I was about to start again with my
argument when Seth Spears, sitting
closest to the newcomer, deliberately
got up from the bench and went to
the counter, telling Pruett as he
went that he had to have some sugar.
It was all a farce, a pretext, I knew.
I've known Seth for years and had
never known him before to take upon
himself the buying for his wife's
kitchen. Seth simply would not sit beside
the man.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">t</span> that I could keep my eyes from
the stranger no longer, and the
next moment I felt my heart turn over
within me, then lie still. I have seen
"walking skeletons" in circuses, but
never such a man as the one who was
then sitting at my right hand. Those
side-show men were just lean in comparison
to the fellow who had invaded
our Saturday night club. His thighs
and his legs and his knees, sticking
sharply into his trousers, looked like
pieces of inch board. His shoulders
and his chest seemed as flat and as
sharp as his legs. The sight of the
man shocked me. I sprang to my feet
thoroughly frightened. I could not
see much of his face, sitting there in<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[12]</SPAN></span>
the dark as he was with his back to
the yellow light, but I could make out
enough of it to know that it was in
keeping with the rest of him.</p>
<p>In a moment or two, realizing my
childishness, I had fought down my
fear and, pretending that a scorching
of my leg had caused my hurried movement,
I sat down again. None of the
others said a word, each waiting for
me to continue and to break the embarrassing
silence. Hammersly, black-whiskered,
the "sphinx" as my mother
had called him, watched me closely.
Hating myself not a little bit for actually
being the sissy I had boasted I
was not, I spoke hurriedly, loudly, to
cover my confusion.</p>
<p>"No sir, Jed!" I said, taking up my
argument. "When a man's dead, he's
dead! There's no bringing him back
like that highbrow claimed. The old
heart may be only hitting about once
in every hundred times, and if they
catch it right at the last stroke they
may bring it back then, but once she's
stopped, Jed, she's stopped for good.
Once the pulse has gone, and life has
flickered out, it's out. And it doesn't
come back in any form at all, not in
this world!"</p>
<p>I was glad when I had said it, thereby
asserting myself and downing my
foolish fear of the man whose eyes I
felt burning into me. I did not turn
to look at him but all the while I felt
his gimlety eyes digging into my brain.</p>
<p>Then he spoke. And though he sat
right next to me his voice sounded like
a moan from afar off. It was the first
time we had heard this thing that once
may have been a voice and that now
sounded like a groan from a closely
nailed coffin. He reached a hand toward
my knee to enforce his words, but
I jerked away.</p>
<p>"So you don't believe a man can come
back from the grave, eh?" he grated.
"Believe that once a man's heart is
stilled it's stopped for good, eh? Well,
you're all wrong, sonny. All wrong!
You believe these things. I <i>know</i>
them!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">is</span> interference, his condescension,
his whole hatefulness angered
me. I could now no longer control
my feeling. "Oh! You <i>know</i>,
do you?" I sneered. "On such a subject
as this you're entitled to <i>know</i>, are
you? Don't make me laugh!" I finished
insultingly. I was aroused. And
I'm a big fellow, with no reason to
fear ordinary men.</p>
<p>"Yes, I know!" came back his echoing,
scratching voice.</p>
<p>"How do you know? Maybe you've
been—?"</p>
<p>"Yes, I have!" he answered, his voice
breaking to a squeak. "Take a good
look at me, gentlemen. A good look."
He knew now that he held the center
of the stage, that the moment was his.
Slowly he raised an arm to remove that
ridiculous hat. Again I jumped to my
feet. For as his coat sleeve slipped
down his forearm I saw nothing but
bone supporting his hand. And the
hand that then bared his head was a
skeleton hand! Slowly the hat was
lifted, but as quickly as light six able-bodied
men were on their feet and
half way to the door before we realized
the cowardliness of it. We forced
ourselves back inside the store very
slowly, all of us rather ashamed of our
ridiculous and childlike fear.</p>
<p>But it was all enough to make the
blood curdle, with that live, dead thing
sitting there by our fire. His face and
skull were nothing but bone, the eyes
deeply sunk into their sockets, the dull-brown
skin like parchment in its
tautness, drawn and shriveled down
onto the nose and jaw. There were
no cheeks. Just hollows. The mouth
was a sharp slit beneath the flat nose.
He was hideous.</p>
<p>"Come back and I'll tell you my
yarn," he mocked, the slit that was his
mouth opening a little to show us the
empty, blackened gums. "I've been
dead once," he went on, getting a lot
of satisfaction from the weirdness of
the lie and from our fear, "and <i>I</i> came
back. Come and sit down and I'll explain
why I'm this living skeleton."<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[13]</SPAN></span></p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">W</span><span class="upper">e</span> came back slowly, and as I
did I slipped my hand into my
outside pocket where I had a revolver.
I put my finger in on the trigger and
got ready to use the vicious little
thing. I was on edge and torn to
pieces completely by the sight of the
man, and I doubt not that had he made
a move towards me my frayed nerves
would have plugged him full of lead.
I eyed my friends. They were in no
better way than was I. Fright and horror
stood on each face. Hammersly
was worst. His hands were twitching,
his eyes were like bright glass, his face
bleached and drawn.</p>
<p>"I've quite a yarn to tell," went on
the skeleton in his awful voice. "I've
had quite a life. A full life. I've taken
my fun and my pleasure wherever I
could. Maybe you'll call me selfish
and greedy, but I always used to believe
that a man only passed this way
once. Just like you believe," he nodded
to me, his neck muscles and jaws
creaking. "Six years ago I came up
into this country and got a job on a
farm," he went on, settling into his
story. "Just an ordinary job. But I
liked it because the farmer had a pretty
little daughter of about sixteen or seventeen
and as easy as could be. You
may not believe it, but you can still
find dames green enough to fall for the
right story.</p>
<p>"This one did. I told her I was only
out there for a time for my health.
That I was rich back in the city, with
a fine home and everything. She believed
me. Little fool!" He chuckled
as he said it, and my anger, mounting
with his every devilish word, made the
finger on the trigger in my pocket take
a tighter crook to itself. "I asked her
to skip with me," the droning went on,
"made her a lot of great promises, and
she fell for it." His dry jaw bones
clanked and chattered as if he enjoyed
the beastly recital of his achievement,
while we sat gaping at him, believing
either that the man must be mad, or
that we were the mad ones, or dreaming.</p>
<p>"We slipped away one night," continued
the beast. "Went to the city.
To a punk hotel. For three weeks we
stayed there. Then one morning I told
her I was going out for a shave. I was.
I got the shave. But I hadn't thought
it worth while to tell her I wouldn't
be back. Well, she got back to the
farm some way, though I don't
know—"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">W</span><span class="upper">hat</span>!" I shouted, springing
before him. "What! You
mean you left her there! After you'd
taken her, you left her! And here you
sit crowing over it! Gloating! Boasting!
Why you—!" I lived in a rough
country. Associated with rough men,
heard their vicious language, but seldom
used a strong word myself. But
as I stood over that monster, utterly
hating the beastly thing, all the vile
oaths and prickly language of the countryside,
no doubt buried in some unused
cell in my brain, spilled from my
tongue upon him. When I had lashed
him as fiercely as I was able I cried:
"Why don't you come at me? Didn't
you hear what I called you? You beast!
I'd like to riddle you!" I shouted, drawing
my gun.</p>
<p>"Aw, sit down!" he jeered, waving
his rattling hand at me. "You ain't
heard a thing yet. Let me finish.
Well, she got back to the farm some
way or another, and something over a
year later I wandered into this country
again too. I never could explain
just why I came back. It was not altogether
to see the girl. Her father was
a little bit of a man and I began to
remember what a meek and weak sheep
he was. I got it into my head that
it'd be fun to go back to his farm and
rub it in. So I came.</p>
<p>"Her father was trying out a new
corn planter right at the back door
when I rounded the house and walked
towards him. Then I saw, at once,
that I had made a mistake. When he
put his eyes on me his face went white
and hard. He came down from the seat
of that machine like a flash, and took<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[14]</SPAN></span>
hurried steps in the direction of a
doublebarrelled gun leaning against
the woodshed. They always were
troubled with hawks and kept a gun
handy. But there was an ax nearer to
me than the gun was to him. I had
to work fast but I made it all right.
I grabbed that ax, jumped at him as
he reached for the gun, and swung—once.
His wife, and the girl too, saw
it. Then I turned and ran."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> gaunt brute before us slowly
crossed one groaning knee above
the other. We were all sitting again
now. The perspiration rolled down my
face. I held my gun trained upon him,
and, though I now believed he was totally
mad, because of a certain ring of
truth in that empty voice, I sat fascinated.
I looked at Seth. His jaw
was hanging loose, his eyes bulging.
Hammersly's mouth was set in a tight
clenched line, his eyes like fire in his
blue, drawn face. I could not see the
others.</p>
<p>"The telephone caught me," continued
our ghastly story-teller, "and in
no time at all I was convicted and the
date set for the hanging. When my
time was pretty close a doctor or scientist
fellow came to see me who said,
'Blaggett, you're slated to die. How
much will you sell me your body for?'
If he didn't say it that way he meant
just that. And I said, 'Nothing. I've
no one to leave money to. What do
you want with my body?' And he told
me, 'I believe I can bring you back to
life and health, provided they don't
snap your neck when they drop you.'
'Oh, you're one of <i>those</i> guys, are you?'
I said then. 'All right, hop to it. If
you can do it I'll be much obliged.
Then I can go back on that farm and
do a little more ax swinging!'" Again
came his horrible chuckle, again I
mopped my brow.</p>
<p>"So we made our plans," he went on,
pleased with our discomfiture and our
despising of him. "Next day some
chap came to see me, pretending he
was my brother. And I carried out
my part of it by cursing him at first
and then begging him to give me decent
burial. So he went away, and, I
suppose, received permission to get me
right after I was cut down.</p>
<p>"There was a fence built around the
scaffold they had ready for me and the
party I was about to fling, and they
had some militia there, too. The crowd
seemed quiet enough till they led me
out. Then their buzzing sounded like
a hive of bees getting all stirred up.
Then a few loud voices, then shouts.
Some rocks came flying at me after
that, and it looked to me as though the
hanging would not be so gentle a party
after all. I tell you I was afraid. I
wished it was over.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> mob pushed against the
fence and flattened it out, coming
over it like waves over a beach.
The soldiers fired into the air, but still
they came, and I, I ran—up, onto the
scaffold. It was safer!" As he said
this he chuckled loudly. "I'll bet," he
laughed, "that's the first time a guy
ever ran into the noose for the safety
of it! The mob came only to the foot
of the scaffold though, from where they
seemed satisfied to see the law take its
course. The sheriff was nervous. So
cut up that he only made a fling at
tying my ankles, just dropped a rope
around my wrists. He was like me,
he wanted to get it over, and the crowd
on its way. Then he put the rope
around my neck, stepped back and shot
the trap. Zamm! No time for a prayer—or
for me to laugh at the offer!—or
a last word or anything.</p>
<p>"I felt the floor give, felt myself
shoot through. Smack! My weight
on the end of the rope hit me behind
the ears like a mallet. Everything
went black. Of course it would have
been just my luck to get a broken neck
out of it and give the scientist no
chance to revive me. But after a second
or two, or a minute, or it could
have been an hour, the blackness went
away enough to allow me to know I
was hanging on the end of the rope,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[15]</SPAN></span>
kicking, fighting, choking to death. My
tongue swelled, my face and head
and heart and body seemed ready
to burst. Slowly I went into a deep
mist that I knew then was <i>the</i> mist,
then—then—I was off floating in the
air over the heads of the crowd, watching
my own hanging!</p>
<p>"I saw them give that slowly swinging
carcass on the end of its rope time
enough to thoroughly die, then, from
my aerial, unseen watching place, I
saw them cut it—me—down. They
tried the pulse of the body that had
been mine, they examined my staring
eyes. Then I heard them pronounce
me dead. The fools! I had known I
was dead for a minute or two by that
time, else how could my spirit have
been gone from the shell and be out
floating around over their heads?"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> paused here as he asked his
question, his head turning on its
dry and creaking neck to include us
all in his query. But none of us spoke.
We were dreaming it all, of course, or
were mad, we thought.</p>
<p>"In just a short while," went on the
skeleton, "my 'brother' came driving
slowly in for my body. With no special
hurry he loaded me onto his little
truck and drove easily away. But once
clear of the crowd he pushed his foot
down on the gas and in five more minutes—with
me hovering all the while
alongside of him, mind you—floating
along as though I had been a bird all
my life—we turned into the driveway
of a summer home. The scientific guy
met him. They carried me into the
house, into a fine-fitted laboratory. My
dead body was placed on a table, a
huge knife ripped my clothes from me.</p>
<p>"Quickly the loads from ten or a
dozen hypodermic syringes were shot
into different parts of my naked body.
Then it was carried across the room
to what looked like a large glass bottle,
or vase, with an opening in the
top. Through this door I was lowered,
my body being held upright by straps
in there for that purpose. The door
to the opening was then placed in
position, and by means of an acetylene
torch and some easily melting glass,
the door was sealed tight.</p>
<p>"So there stood my poor old body.
Ready for the experiment to bring it
back to life. And as my new self
floated around above the scientist and
his helper I smiled to myself, for I
was sure the experiment would prove
a failure, even though I now knew that
the sheriff's haste had kept him from
placing the rope right at my throat
and had saved me a broken neck. I
was dead. All that was left of me now
was my spirit, or soul. And that was
swimming and floating about above
their heads with not an inclination in
the world to have a thing to do with
the husk of the man I could clearly
see through the glass of the bell.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">hey</span> turned on a huge battery
of ultra-violet rays then," continued
the hollow droning of the man
who had been hanged, "which, as the
scientist had explained to me while in
prison, acting upon the contents of the
syringes, by that time scattered
through my whole body, was to renew
the spark of life within the dead thing
hanging there. Through a tube, and
by means of a valve entering the glass
vase in the top, the scientist then admitted
a dense white gas. So thick
was it that in a moment or two my
body's transparent coffin appeared to
be full of a liquid as white as milk.
Electricity then revolved my cage
around so that my body was insured a
complete and even exposure to the
rays of the green and violet lamps.
And while all this silly stuff was going
on, around and around the laboratory
I floated, confident of the complete
failure of the whole thing, yet determined
to see it through if for no
other reason than to see the discomfiture
and disappointment that this
mere man was bound to experience. You
see, I was already looking back upon
earthly mortals as being inferior, and
now as I waited for this proof I was<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[16]</SPAN></span>
all the while fighting off a new urge
to be going elsewhere. Something was
calling me, beckoning me to be coming
into the full spirit world. But I wanted
to see this wise earth guy fail.</p>
<p>"For a little while conditions stayed
the same within that glass. So thick
was the liquid gas in there at first that
I could see nothing. Then it began
to clear, and I saw to my surprise that
the milky gas was disappearing because
it was being forced in by the rays
from the lights in through the pores into
the body itself. As though my form
was sucking it in like a sponge. The
scientist and his helper were tense and
taut with excitement. And suddenly
my comfortable feeling left me. Until
then it had seemed so smooth and
velvety and peaceful drifting around
over their heads, as though lying on a
soft, fleecy cloud. But now I felt a
sudden squeezing of my spirit body.
Then I was in an agony. Before I
knew what I was doing my spirit was
clinging to the outside of that twisting
glass bell, clawing to get into the
body that was coming back to life! The
glass now was perfectly clear of the
gas, though as yet there was no sign
of life in the body inside to hint to the
scientist that he was to be successful.
But I knew it. For I fought desperately
to break in through the glass
to get back into my discarded shell of
a body again, knowing I must get in
or die a worse death than I had before.</p>
<p>"Then my sharper eyes noted a
slight shiver passing over the white
thing before me, and the scientist must
have seen it in the next second, for he
sprang forward with a choking cry of
delight. Then the lolling head inside
lifted a bit. I—still desperately clinging
with my spirit hands to the outside,
and all the time growing weaker
and weaker—I saw the breast of my
body rise and fall. The assistant
picked up a heavy steel hammer and
stood ready to crash open the glass at
the right moment. Then my once dead
eyes opened in there to look around,
while I, clinging and gasping outside,
just as I had on the scaffold, went into
a deeper, darker blackness than ever.
Just before my spirit life died utterly
I saw the eyes of my body realize completely
what was going on, then—from
the inside now—I saw the scientist
give the signal that caused the assistant
to crash away the glass shell
with one blow of his hammer.</p>
<p>"They reached in for me then, and
I fainted. When I came back to consciousness
I was being carefully,
slowly revived, and nursed back to life
by oxygen and a pulmotor."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> terrible creature telling us
this tale paused again to look
around. My knees were weak, my
clothes wet with sweat.</p>
<p>"Is that all?" I asked in a piping,
strange voice, half sarcastic, half unbelieving,
and wholly spellbound.</p>
<p>"Just about," he answered. "But
what do you expect? I left my friend
the scientist at once, even though he
did hate to see me go. It had been
all right while he was so keen on the
experiment himself and while he only
half believed his ability to bring me
back. But now that he'd done it, it
kinda worried him to think what sort
of a man he was turning loose of the
world again. I could see how he was
figuring, and because I had no idea of
letting him try another experiment on
me, p'r'aps of putting me away again,
I beat it in a hurry.</p>
<p>"That was five years ago. For five
years I've lived with only just part of
me here. Whatever it was trying to
get back into that glass just before my
body came to life—my spirit, I've been
calling it—I've been without. It never
did get back. You see, the scientist
brought me back inside a shell that
kept my spirit out. That's why I'm
the skeleton you see I am. Something
vital is missing."</p>
<p>He stood up cracking and creaking
before us, buttoning his loose coat
about his angular body. "Well, boys,"
he asked lightly, "what do you think
of that?"<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[17]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"I think you're a liar! A damn
liar!" I cried. "And now, if you don't
want me to fill you full of lead, get
out of here and get out now! If I have
to do it to you, there's no scientist this
time to bring you back. When you go
out you'll stay out!"</p>
<p>"Don't worry," he grimaced back to
me, waving a mass of bones that should
have been a hand contemptuously at
me, "I'm going. I'm headed for
Shelton." He stalked the length of the
floor and shut the door behind him.
The beast had gone.</p>
<p>"The dirty liar!" I cried. "I wish—yes—I
wish I had an excuse to kill
him. Just think of that being loose,
will you? A brute who would think
up such a yarn! Of course it's all
absurd. All crazy. All a lie."</p>
<p>"No. It's not a lie."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">turned</span> to see who had spoken.
Hammersly's voice was so unfamiliar
and now so torn in addition
that I could not have thought he had
spoken, had he not been looking right
at me, his glittering eyes challenging
my assertion. Would wonders never
cease? I asked myself. First this outrageous
yarn, now Hammersly, the
"sphinx," expressing an opinion, looking
for an argument! Of course it
must be that his susceptible and brooding
brain had been turned a bit by the
evening we had just experienced.</p>
<p>"Why Hammersly! You don't believe
it?" I asked.</p>
<p>"I not only believe it, Jerry, but now
it's my turn to say, as he did, I <i>know</i>
it! Jerry, old friend," he went on,
"that devil told the truth. He was
hanged. He was brought back to life;
and Jerry—I was that scientist!"</p>
<p>Whew! I fell back to a box again.
My knees seemed to forsake me. Then
I heard Hammersly talking to himself.</p>
<p>"Five years it's been," he muttered.
"Five years since I turned him loose
again. Five years of agony for me,
wondering what new devilish crimes
he was perpetrating, wondering when
he would return to that little farm to
swing his ax again. Five years—five
years."</p>
<p>He came over to me, and without a
word of explanation or to ask my permission
he reached his hand into my
pocket and drew out my revolver, and
I did not protest.</p>
<p>"He said he was headed for Shelton,"
went on Hammersly's spoken thoughts.
"If I slip across the ice I can intercept
him at Black's woods." Buttoning his
coat closely, he followed the stranger
out into the night.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">was</span> glad the moon had come up
for my walk home, glad too when
I had the door locked and propped
with a chair behind me. I undressed
in the dark, not wanting any grisly,
sunken-eyed monster to be looking in
through the window at me. For maybe,
so I thought, maybe he was after all
not headed for Shelton, but perhaps
planning on another of his ghastly
tricks.</p>
<p>But in the morning we knew he had
been going toward Shelton. Scientists,
doctors, and learned men of all descriptions
came out to our village to
see the thing the papers said Si Waters
had stumbled upon when on his
way to the creamery that next morning.</p>
<p>It was a skeleton, they said, only
that it had a dry skin all over it.
A mummy. Could not have been considered
capable of containing life only
that the snow around it was lightly
blotched with a pale smear that proved
to be blood, that had oozed out from
the six bullet holes in the horrid chest.
They never did solve it.</p>
<p>There were five of us in the store
that night. Five of us who know.
Hammersly did what we all wanted to
do. Of course his name is not really
Hammersly, but it has done here as
well as another. He is black-whiskered
though, and he is still very much of
a sphinx, but he'll never have to answer
for having killed the man he once
brought back to life. Hammersly's
secret will go into five other graves besides
his own.</p>
<hr />
<div class="image">
<ANTIMG src="images/i018.jpg" width-obs="567" height-obs="600" alt="" title="" /></div>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>"Now," said Kleig hoarsely,<br/> "watch closely, for God's sake!"</i></h3>
<h2 class="chapter3"><SPAN name="Monsters_of_Moyen" id="Monsters_of_Moyen"></SPAN>Monsters of Moyen</h2>
<h2 class="chapter"><i>By Arthur J. Burks</i></h2>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>Foreword</i></h3>
<div class="sidenote">"The Western World shall be next!" was
the dread ultimatum of the half-monster,
half-god Moyen!</div>
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">n</span> 1935 the mighty genius of Moyen<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[18]</SPAN></span>
gripped the Eastern world like
a hand of steel. In a matter of
months he had welded the Orient
into an unbeatable war-machine. He
had, through the sheer magnetism of a
strange personality,
carried the
Eastern world
with him on his
march to conquest
of the earth, and men followed
him with blind faith as men in the
past have followed the banners of the
Thaumaturgists.</p>
<p>A strange name, to the sound of
which none could assign nationality.
Some said his father was a Russian
refugee, his mother a Mongol woman.
Some said he was
the son of a Caucasian
woman lost
in the Gobi and
rescued by a mad<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[19]</SPAN></span>
lama of Tibet, who became father of
Moyen. Some said that his mother was
a goddess, his father a fiend out of hell.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="image">
<ANTIMG src="images/i019.jpg" width-obs="520" height-obs="594" alt="" title="" /></div>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<p>But this all men knew about him:
that he combined within himself the
courage of a Hannibal, the military
genius of a Napoleon, the ideals of a
Sun Yat Sen; and that he had sworn
to himself he would never rest until
the earth was peopled by a single
nation, with Moyen himself in the seat
of the mighty ruler.</p>
<p>Madagascar was the seat of his government,
from which he looked across
into United Africa, the first to join
his confederacy. The Orient was a
dependency, even to that forbidden
land of the Goloks, where outlanders
sometimes went, but whence they never
returned—and to the wild Goloks he
was a god whose will was absolute, to
render obedience to whom was a privilege
accorded only to the Chosen.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">n</span> a short year his confederacy had
brought under his might the millions
of Asia, which he had welded
into a mighty machine for further conquest.</p>
<p>And because the Americas saw the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[20]</SPAN></span>
handwriting on the wall, they sent out
to see the man Moyen, with orders to
penetrate to his very side, as a spy,
their most trusted Secret Agent—Prester
Kleig.</p>
<p>Only the ignorant believed that
Moyen was mad. The military and
diplomatic geniuses of the world recognized
his genius, and resented it.</p>
<p>But Prester Kleig, of the Secret Service
of the Americas, one of the <i>few</i>
men whose headquarters were in the
Secret Room in Washington, had
reached Moyen.</p>
<p>Now he was coming home.</p>
<p>He came home to tell his people what
Moyen was planning, and to admit that
his investigations had been hampered
at every turn by the uncanny genius
of Moyen. Military plans had been
guarded with unbelievable secrecy.
War machines he knew to exist, yet
had seen only those common to all the
armies of the world.</p>
<p>And now, twenty-four hours out of
New York City, aboard the <i>S. S. Stellar</i>,
Prester Kleig was literally willing the
steamer to greater speed—and in far
Madagascar the strange man called
Moyen had given the ultimatum:</p>
<p>"The Western World shall be next!"</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER I</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>The Hand of Moyen.</i></h3>
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">W</span><span class="upper">ho</span> is that man?" asked a
young lady passenger of the
steward, with the imperious inflection
which tells of riches able to force
obedience from menials who labor for
hire.</p>
<p>She pointed a bejeweled finger at the
slender, soldierly figure which stood in
the prow of the liner, like a figurehead,
peering into the storm under the vessel's
forefoot.</p>
<p>"That gentleman, milady?" repeated
the steward obsequiously. "That is
Prester Kleig, head of the Secret
Agents, Master of the Secret Room,
just now returning from Madagascar,
via Europe, after a visit to the realm
of Moyen."</p>
<p>A gasp of terror burst from the lips
of the woman. Her cheeks blanched.</p>
<p>"Moyen!" She almost whispered it.
"Moyen! The half-god of Asia, whom
men call mad!"</p>
<p>"Not mad, milady. No, Moyen is not
mad, save with a lust for power. He
is the conqueror of the ages, already
ruling more of the earth's population
than any man has ever done before him—even
Alexander!"</p>
<p>But the young lady was not listening
to stewards. Wealthy young ladies did
not, save when asked questions dealing
with personal service to themselves.
Her eyes devoured the slender man
who stood in the prow of the <i>Stellar</i>,
while her lips shaped, over and over
again, the dread name which was on
the lips of the people of the world:</p>
<p>"Moyen! Moyen!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">U</span><span class="span">p</span> in the prow, if Prester Kleig,
who carried a dread secret in his
breast, knew of the young lady's regard,
he gave no sign. There were
touches of gray at his temples, though
he was still under forty. He had seen
more of life, knew more of its terrors,
than most men twice his age—because
he had lived harshly in service to his
country.</p>
<p>He was thinking of Moyen, the
genius of the misshapen body, the pale
eyes which reflected the fires of a
Satanic soul, set deeply in the midst
of the face of an angel; and wondering
if he would be able to arrive in time,
sorry that he had not returned home
by airplane.</p>
<p>He had taken the <i>Stellar</i> only because
the peacefulness of ocean liner travel
would aid his thoughts, and he required
time to marshal them. Liner
travel was now a luxury, as all save
the immensely wealthy traveled by
plane across the oceans. Now Prester
Kleig was sorry, for any moment, he
felt, Moyen might strike.</p>
<p>He turned and looked back along the
deck of the <i>Stellar</i>. His eyes played
over the trimly gowned figure of the
woman who questioned the steward,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[21]</SPAN></span>
but did not really see her. And then....</p>
<p>"Great God!" The words were a
prayer, and they burst from the lips
of Prester Kleig like an explosion.
Passengers appeared from the lee of
lifeboats. Officers on the bridge
whirled to look at the man who
shouted. Seamen paused in their labors
to stare. Aloft in the crow's-nest the
lookout lowered his eyes from scouring
the horizon to stare at Prester Kleig—who
was pointing.</p>
<p>All eyes turned in the direction indicated.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">C</span><span class="upper">limbing</span> into the sky, a mile off
the starboard beam, was an airplane
with a bulbous body and queerly
slanted wings. It had neither wheels
nor pontoons, and it traveled with unbelievable
speed. It came on bullet-fast,
headed directly for the side of
the <i>Stellar</i>.</p>
<p>"Lower the boats!" yelled Kleig.
"Lower the boats! For God's sake lower
the boats!"</p>
<p>For Prester Kleig, in that casual
turning, had seen what none aboard
the <i>Stellar</i>, even the lookout above, had
seen. The airplane, which had neither
wheels nor pontoons, had risen, as
Aphrodite is said to have risen, out of
the waves! He had seen the wings
come out of the bulbous body, snap
backward into place, and the plane was
in full flight the instant it appeared.</p>
<p>Prester Kleig had no hope that his
warning would be in time, but he
would always feel better for having
given it. As the captain debated with
himself as to whether this lunatic
should be confined as dangerous, the
strange airplane nosed over and dived
down to the sea, a hundred yards from
the side of the <i>Stellar</i>. Just before it
struck the water, its wings snapped
forward and became part of the bulbous
body of the thing, the whole of which
shot like a bullet into the sea.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rester Kleig</span> stood at the
rail, peering out at the spot where
the plane had plunged in with scarcely
a splash, and his right hand was raised
as though he gave a final, despairing
signal.</p>
<p>Of all aboard the <i>Stellar</i>, he only
saw that black streak which, ten feet
under water, raced like a bolt of lightning
from the nose of the submerged
but visible plane, straight as a die for
the side of the <i>Stellar</i>. Just a black
streak, no bigger than a small man's
arm, from the nose of the plane to the
side of the <i>Stellar</i>.</p>
<p>From the crow's-nest came the
startled, terrific voice of the lookout,
in the beginning of a cry that must
remain forever inarticulate.</p>
<p>The world, in that blinding moment,
seemed to rock on its foundations; to
shatter itself to bits in a chaotic jumble
of sound and of movement, shot through
and through with lurid flames. Kleig
felt himself hurled upward and outward,
turned over and over endlessly....</p>
<p>He felt the storm-tossed waters close
over him, and knew he had struck. In
the moment he knew—oblivion, deep,
ebon and impenetrable, blotted out
knowledge.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER II</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>The Half-Dream</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">roaring</span>, rushing river of chaotic
sound, first. Jumbled sound
to which Prester Kleig could give no
adequate name. But as he tried to
analyze its meanings, he was able to
differentiate between sounds, and to
discover the identity of some.</p>
<p>The river of sound he decided to be
the sound of a vibrational explosion
of some sort—vibrational because it
had that quivery quality which causes
a feeling of uneasiness and fret, that
feeling which makes one turn and look
around to find the eyes boring into
one's back—yet multiplied in its intensity
an uncounted number of times.</p>
<p>Other sounds which came through
the chaotic river of sound were the
terrified screaming of the men and
women who were doomed. Lifeboats
were never lowered, for the reason that<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[22]</SPAN></span>
with the disintegration of the <i>Stellar</i>,
everything inanimate aboard her likewise
disintegrated, dropping men and
women, crew and passengers, into the
freezing waters of the Atlantic.</p>
<p>Prester Kleig dropped with them,
only partially unconscious after the
first icy plunge. He knew when he
floated on the surface, for he felt himself
lifted and hurled by the waves.
In his half-dream he saw men and
women being carried away into wave-shrouded
darkness, clawing wildly at
nothingness for support, clawing at
one another, locking arms, and going
down together.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> <i>Stellar</i>, in the merest matter
of seconds, had become spoil of
the sea, and her crew and passengers
had vanished forever from the sight
of men. Yet Prester Kleig lived on,
knew that he lived on, and that there
was an element, too strong to be disbelieved,
of reality in his dream.</p>
<p>There was a vibratory sense, too, as
of the near activity of a noiseless
motor. Noiseless motor! Where had
he last thought of those two words?
With what recent catastrophe were
they associated? No, he could not recall,
though he knew he should be able
to do so.</p>
<p>Then the sense of motion to the
front was apparent—an unnumbered
sense, rather than concrete feeling.
Motion to front, influenced by the rising
and falling motion of mountainous
waves.</p>
<p>So suddenly as to be a distinct shock,
the wave motion ceased, though the
forward motion—and <i>upward!</i>—not
only continued but increased.</p>
<p>That airplane of the bulbous body,
the queerly slanted wings....</p>
<p>But the glimmering of realization
vanished as a sickishly sweet odor assailed
his nostrils and sent its swift-moving
tentacles upward to wrap themself
soothingly about his brain. But the
sense of flight, unbelievably swift, was
present and recognizable, though all
else eluded him. He had the impression,
however, that it was intended that
all save the most vagrant, most widely
differentiated, impressions elude him—that
he should acquire only half pictures,
which would therefore be all the
more terrible in retrospect.</p>
<p>The only impressions which were
real were those of motion to the front,
and upward, and the sense of noiseless
machinery, vibrating the whole, nearby.</p>
<p>Then a distinct realization of the
cessation of the sense of flying, and
a return, though in lesser degree, of
the rising and falling of waves. This
latter sensation became less and less,
though the feeling of traveling downward
continued. Prester Kleig knew
that he was going down into the sea
again, down into it deeply.... Then
that odor once more, and the elusive
memory.</p>
<p>Forward motion at last, in the depths,
swift, forward motion, though Prester
Kleig could not even guess at the
direction. Just swift motion, and the
mutter of voices, the giving of orders....</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rester Kleig</span> regained consciousness
fully on the sands of
the shore. He sat up stiffly, staring out
to sea. A storm was raging, and the sea
was an angry waste. No ship showed
on the waters; the mad, tumbled sky
above it was either empty of planes
or they had climbed to invisibility
above the clouds that raced and
churned with the storm.</p>
<p>Out of the storm, almost at Prester
Kleig's feet, dropped a small airplane.
Through the window a familiar face
peered at Kleig. A helmeted, begoggled
figure opened the door and stepped
out.</p>
<p>"Kleig, old man," said the flyer, "you
gave me the right dope all right, but
I'll swear there isn't a wireless tower
within a hundred miles of this place!
How did you manage it?"</p>
<p>"Kane, you're crazy, or I am, or...."
But Prester Kleig could not go on with
the thought which had rushed through
his brain with the numbing impact of
a blow. He grasped the hand of Carlos<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[23]</SPAN></span>
Kane, of the Domestic Service, and
the yellow flimsy Kane held out to him.
It read simply:</p>
<p>"Shipwrecked. Am ashore at—"
There followed grid coordinate map
readings. "Come at once, prepared to
fly me to Washington." It was signed
"Kleig."</p>
<p>"Kane," said Kleig, "I did not send
this message!"</p>
<p>What more was there to be said?
Horror looked out of the eyes of Prester
Kleig, and was reflected in those
of Carlos Kane. Both men turned,
peering out across the tumbled welter
of waters.</p>
<p>Somewhere out there, tight-locked in
the gloomy archives of the Atlantic,
was the secret of the message which
had brought Carlos Kane to Prester
Kleig—and the agency which had
sent it.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER III</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>Wings of To-morrow</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">s</span> Prester Kleig climbed into the
enclosed passenger pit of the
monoplane—a Mayther—his ears
seemed literally to be ringing with the
drumming, mighty voice of Moyen.
But now that voice, instead of merely
speaking, rang with sardonic laughter.
He had never heard the laughter of
Moyen, but he could guess how it
would sound.</p>
<p>That airplane of the slanted wings,
the bulbous, almost bulletlike fuselage,
what of it? It was simple, as Kleig
looked back at his memoried glimpse
of it. The submarine was a metal fish
made with human hands; the airplane
aped the birds. The strange ship which
had caused the destruction of the
<i>Stellar</i>, was a combination fish and
bird—which merely aped nature a bit
further, as anyone who had ever
traversed tropical waters would have
instantly recognized.</p>
<p>But what did it portend? What
ghastly terrors of Moyen roamed the
deeps of the Atlantic, of the Pacific,
the oceans of the world? How close
were some of these to the United
States?</p>
<p>The pale eyes of Moyen, he was sure,
were already turned toward the West.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rester Kleig</span> sighed as he
seated himself beside Carlos Kane.
Then Kane pressed one of the myriad
of buttons on the dash, and Kleig lifted
his eyes to peer through the skylight,
to where that single press of a button
had set in motion the intricate
machinery of the helicopter.</p>
<p>A four-bladed fan lifted on a slender
pedestal, sufficiently high above the
surface of the wing for the vanes to
be free of the central propeller. Then,
automatically, the vanes became invisible,
and the Mayther lifted from
the sandy beach as lightly, and far
more straightly, than any bird.</p>
<p>As the ship climbed away for the
skies, and through the transparent floor
the beach and the Atlantic fell away
below the ship, a sigh of relief escaped
Kleig. This was living! Up here one
was free, if only for a moment, and
the swift wind of flight brushed all
cobwebs from the tired human brain.
He watched the slender needle of the
altimeter, as it moved around the face
of the dial as steadily as the hands of
a clock, around to thirty thousand,
thirty-five, forty.</p>
<p>Then Carlos Kane, every movement
as effortless as the flight of the silvery
winged Mayther, thrust forth his hand
to the dash again, pressed another button.
Instantly the propellers vanished
into a blur as the vanes of the helicopter
dropped down the slender staff
and the vanes themselves fitted snugly
into their appointed notches atop the
wing.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">F</span><span class="upper">or</span> a second Carlos Kane glanced
at the tiny map to the right of
the dash, and set his course. It was a
matter of moments only, but while
Kane worked, Prester Kleig studied the
instruments on the dash, for it had been
months since he had flown, save for his
recent half-dreamlike experience. There<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</SPAN></span>
was a button which released the
mechanism of the deadly guns, fired by
compressed air, all operated from the
noiseless motor, whose muzzles exactly
cleared the tips of Mayther's wings,
two guns to each wing, one on the entering
edge, one on the trailing edge,
fitted snugly into the adamant rigging.</p>
<p>Four guns which could fire to right
or left, twin streams of lead, the number
of rounds governed only by the
carrying power of the Mayther. Prester
Kleig knew them all: the guns in the
wings, the guns which fired through
the three propellers, and the guns set
two and two in the fuselage, to right
and left of the pits, which could be
fixed either up or down—all by the
mere pressing of buttons. It was
marvelous, miraculous, yet even as
Kleig told himself that this was so, he
felt, deep in the heart of him, that
Moyen knew all about ships like these,
and regarded them as the toys of
children.</p>
<p>Kane touched Kleig on the shoulder,
signaling, indicating that the atmosphere
in the pits had been regulated
to their new height, and that they
could remove their helmets and oxygen
tanks without danger.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">W</span><span class="upper">ith</span> a sigh Prester Kleig sat
back, and the two friends
turned to face each other.</p>
<p>"You certainly look done in, Kleig,"
said Kane sympathetically. "You must
have been through hell, and then some.
Tell me about this Moyen; that is, if
you think you care to talk about him."</p>
<p>"Talk about him!" repeated Kleig.
"Talk about him? It will be a relief!
There has been nothing, and nobody,
on my mind save Moyen for weary
months on end. If I don't talk to someone
about him, I'll go mad, if I'm not
mad already. Moyen? A monster with
the face of an angel! What else can
one say about him? A devil and a
saint, a brute whose followers would go
with him into hell's fire, and sing him
hosannas as they were consumed in
agony! The greatest mob psychologist
the world has ever seen. He's a genius,
Kane, and unless something is done,
the Western world, all the world, is
doomed to sit at the feet, listen to the
commands, of Moyen!</p>
<p>"He isn't an Oriental; he isn't a
European; he isn't negroid or Indian;
but there is something about him that
makes one thing of all of these, singly
and collectively. His body is twisted
and grotesque, and when one looks at
his face, one feels a desire to touch him,
to swear eternal fealty to him—until
one looks into his pale eyes, eyes almost
milky in their paleness—and gets
the merest hint of the thoughts which
actuate him. If he has a failing I did
not find it. He does not drink,
gamble...."</p>
<p>"And women?" queried Kane, softly.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">K</span><span class="upper">leig</span> was madly in love with the
sister of Kane, Charmion, and
this thing touched him nearest the
heart, because Charmion was one of
her country's most famous beauties,
about whom Moyen must already have
heard.</p>
<p>"Women?" repeated Kleig musingly,
his black eyes troubled, haunted. "I
scarcely know. He has no love for
women, only because he has no capacity
for any love save self-love. But when
I think of him in this connection I seem
to see Moyen, grown to monster proportions,
sitting on a mighty throne,
with nude women groveling at his feet,
bathed in tears, their long hair in mantles
of sorrow, hiding their shamed
faces! That sounds wild, doesn't it?
But it's the picture I get of Moyen
when I think of Moyen and of women.
Many women will love him, and have,
perhaps. But while he has taken many,
though I am only guessing here, he has
given <i>himself</i> to none. Another thing:
His followers—well, he sets no limits
to the lusts of his men, requiring only
that every soldier be fit for duty, with
a body strong for hardship. You understand?"</p>
<p>Kane understood; and his face was
very pale.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[25]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"Yes," he said, his voice almost a
whisper, "I understand, and as you
speak of this man I seem to see a city
in ruins, and hordes of men marching,
bloodstained men entering houses ...
from which, immediately afterward,
come the screams of women ... terror-stricken
women...."</p>
<p>He shuddered and could not go on
for the very horror of the vision that
had come to him.</p>
<p>But Kleig stared at him as though
he saw a ghost.</p>
<p>"Great God, Carl!" he gasped. "The
same identical picture has been in my
mind, not once but a thousand times! I
wonder...."</p>
<p>Was it an omen of the future for the
West?</p>
<p>Deep in his soul Prester Kleig
fancied he could hear the sardonic
laughter of the half-god, Moyen.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">tiny</span> bell rang inside the dash,
behind the instruments. Kane
had set direction finders, had pressed
the button which signaled the Washington-control
Station of the National
Radio, thus automatically indicating
the exact spot above land, by grid-coordinates,
where the Mayther should
start down for the landing.</p>
<p>An hour later they landed on the
flat roof of the new Capitol Building,
sinking lightly to rest as a feather,
nursed to a gentle landing by the
whirring vanes of the helicopter.</p>
<p>Prester Kleig, surrounded by uniformed
guards who tried to shield him
from the gaze of news-gatherers
crowded there on the roof-top, hurried
him to the stairway leading into the
executive chambers, and through these
to the Secret Chamber which only a
few men knew, and into which not even
Carlos Kane could follow Prester
Kleig—yet.</p>
<p>But one man, one news-gatherer, had
caught a glimpse of the face of Kleig,
and already he raced for the radio
tower of his organization, to blazon to
the Western world the fact that Kleig
had come back.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER IV</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>A Nation Waits in Dread</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">s</span> Prester Kleig, looking twice his
forty years because of fatigue,
and almost nameless terrors through
which he had passed, went to his rendezvous,
the news-gatherer, who shall
here remain nameless, raced for the
Broadcasting Tower.</p>
<p>As Prester Kleig entered the Secret
Room and at a signal all the many
doors behind him, along that interminable
stairway, swung shut and were
tightly locked, the news-gatherer raced
for the microphone and gave the "priority"
signal to the operator. Millions
of people would not only hear the
words of the news-gatherer, but would
see him, note the expressions which
chased one another across his face.
For television was long since an accomplished,
everyday fact.</p>
<p>"Prester Kleig, of this government's
Secret Service, has just returned to the
United Americas! Your informer has
just seen him step from the monoplane
of Carlos Kane, atop the Capitol Building,
and repair at once to the Secret
Room, closely guarded. But I saw his
face, and though he is under forty,
he seems twice that. And you know
now what this country has only
guessed at before—that he has seen
Moyen. Moyen the half-man, half-god,
the enigma of the ages. What does
Prester Kleig think of this man? He
doesn't say, for he dares not speak, yet.
But your informer saw his face, and it
is old and twisted with terror! And—"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">hat</span> ended the discourse of the
news-gatherer, and it was many
hours before the public really understood.
For, with a new sentence but
half completed, the picture of the news-gatherer
faded blackly off the screens
in a million homes, and his voice was
blotted out by a humming that mounted
to a terrific appalling shriek! Some
terrible agency, about which people
who knew their radio could only guess,
had drowned out the words of the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[26]</SPAN></span>
news-gatherer, leaving the public
stunned and bewildered, almost groping
before a feeling of terror which was
all the more unbearable because none
could give it a name.</p>
<p>And the public had heard but a fraction
of the truth—merely that Kleig
had come back. It had been the intention
of the government to deny the
public even this knowledge, and it had;
but knowledge of the denial itself was
public property, which filled the hearts
of men and women all through the
Western Hemisphere with nameless
dread. And over all this abode of
countless millions hovered the shadow
of Moyen.</p>
<p>The government tried to correct the
impression which the news-gatherer
had given out.</p>
<p>"Prester Kleig is back," said the
radio, while the government speaker
tried, for the benefit of those who could
see him, to smile reassuringly. "But
there is nothing to cause anyone the
slightest concern. He has seen Moyen,
yes, and has heard him speak, but still
there is nothing to distress anyone, and
the whole story will be given to you
as soon as possible. Kleig has gone
into the Secret Room, yes, but every
operative of the government, when discussing
business connected with diplomatic
relations with foreign powers, is
received in the Secret Room. No cause
for worry!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">t</span> was so easy to say that, and the
speaker realized it, which was why
he could but with difficulty make his
smile seem reassuring.</p>
<p>"Tell us the truth, and tell us quickly,"
might have been the voiceless cries
of those who listened and saw the face
and fidgeting form of the speaker.
But the words were not spoken, because
the people sensed a hovering horror, a
dread catastrophe beyond the power of
words to express—and so looked at one
another in silence, their eyes wide with
dread, their hearts throbbing to suffocation
with nameless foreboding.</p>
<p>So eyes were horror-haunted, and
men walked, flew, and rode in fear and
trembling—while, down in the Secret
Room, Prester Kleig and a dozen old
men, men wise in the ways of science
and invention, wise in the ways of men
and of beasts, of Nature and the Infinite
Outside, decided the fate of the
Nation.</p>
<p>That Secret Room was closed to
every one. Not even the news-gatherers
could reach it; not even the all-seeing
eye of the telephotograph emblazoned
to the world its secrets.</p>
<p>But <i>was</i> it secret?</p>
<p>Perhaps Moyen, the master mobster,
smiled when he heard men say so, men
who knew in their hearts that Moyen
regarded other earthlings as earthlings
regard children and their toys. Did
the eyes of Moyen gaze even into the
depths of the Secret Room, hundreds
of feet below even the documentary-treasure
vaults of the Capitol?</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">N</span><span class="upper">o</span> one knew the answer to the
question, but the radio, reporting
the return of Kleig, had given the public
a distorted vision of an embodied
fear, and in its heart the public answered
"Yes!" And what had drowned
out the voice of the radio-reporter?</p>
<p>No wonder that, for many hours, a
nation waited in fear and trembling,
eyes filled with dread that was nameless
and absolute, for word from the
Secret Room. Fear mounted and
mounted as the hours passed and no
word came.</p>
<p>In that room Prester Kleig and the
twelve old men, one of whom was the
country's President, held counsel with
the man who had come back. But before
the spoken counsel had been held,
awesome and awe-inspiring pictures
had flashed across the screen, invented
by a third of the old men, from which
the world held no secrets, even the
secrets of Moyen.</p>
<p>With this mechanism, guarded at
forfeit of the lives of a score of men,
the men of the Secret Room could peer
into even the most secret places of the
world. The old men had peered, and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[27]</SPAN></span>
had seen things which had blanched
their pale cheeks anew. And when
they had finished, and the terrible pictures
had faded out, a voice had spoken
suddenly, like an explosion, in the
Secret Room.</p>
<p>"Well, gentlemen, are you satisfied
that resistance is futile?"</p>
<p>Just the voice; but to one man in the
Secret Room, and to the others when
his numbing lips spoke the name, it was
far more than enough. For not even
the wisest of the great men could explain
how, as they knew, having just
seen him there, a man could be in Madagascar
while his voice spoke aloud in
the Secret Room, where even radio was
barred!</p>
<p>The name on the lips of Prester
Kleig!</p>
<p>"Moyen! Moyen!"</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER V</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>Monsters of the Deep</i></h3>
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">G</span><span class="upper">entlemen</span>," said Prester
Kleig as he entered the Secret
Room, where sat the scientists and inventive
geniuses of the Americas, "we
haven't much time, and I shall waste
but little of it. Moyen is ready to
strike, if he hasn't already done so, as
I believe. We will see in a matter of
seconds. Professor Maniel, we shall
need, first of all, your apparatus for returning
the vibratory images of events
which have transpired within the last
thirty-six hours.</p>
<p>"I wish to show those of you who
failed to see it the sinking of the <i>Stellar</i>,
on which I was a passenger and, I
believe, the only survivor."</p>
<p>Professor Maniel strangely mouse-like
save for the ponderous dome of his
forehead, stepped away from the circular
table without a word. He had invented
the machine in question, and he
was inordinately proud of it. Through
its use he could pick up the sounds,
and the pictures, of events which had
transpired down the past centuries,
from the tinkling of the cymbals of
Miriam to all the horror of the conflict
men had called the Great War, simply
by drawing back from the ether, as the
sounds fled outward through space,
those sounds and vibrations which he
needed.</p>
<p>His science was an exact one, more
carefully exact even than the measurement
of the speed of light, taking into
consideration the dispersion of sound
and movement, and the element of time.</p>
<p>The interior of the Secret Room became
dark as Maniel labored with his
minute machinery. Only behind the
screen on the wall in rear of the table
was there light.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> voice of Maniel began to drone
as he thought aloud.</p>
<p>"There is a matter of but a few minutes
difference in time between Washington
and the last recorded location
of the <i>Stellar</i>. The sinking occurred at
ten-thirty last evening you say, Kleig?
Ah, yes, I have it! Watch carefully,
gentlemen!"</p>
<p>So silent were the Secret Agents one
could not even have heard the breathing
of one of them, for on the screen,
misty at first, but becoming moment by
moment bolder of outline, was the face
of a storm-tossed sea. The liner was
slower in forming, and was slightly out
of focus for a second or two.</p>
<p>"Ah," said Professor Maniel. "There
it is!"</p>
<p>Through the sound apparatus came
the roaring and moaning of a storm at
sea. On the screen the <i>Stellar</i> rose
high on the waves, dropped into the
trough, while spumes of black smoke
spread rearward on the waters from her
spouting funnels. Figures were visible
on her decks, figures which seemed
carved in bronze.</p>
<p>In the prow, every expression on his
face plainly visible, stood Prester
Kleig himself, and as his picture appeared
he was in the act of turning.</p>
<p>"Now," said Kleig himself, there in
the Secret Room, "look off to the left,
gentlemen, a mile from the <i>Stellar</i>!"</p>
<p>A rustling sound as the scientists
shifted in their places.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[28]</SPAN></span></p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">hey</span> all saw it, and a gasp burst
from their lips as though at a signal.
For, as the <i>Stellar</i> seemed about
to plunge off the shadowed screen into
the Secret Room, a flying thing had
risen out of the sea—an airplane with
a bulbous body and queerly slanting
wings.</p>
<p>At the same time, out of the mouth
of the pictured figure of Prester Kleig,
clear and agonized as the tones of a
bell struck in frenzy, the words:</p>
<p>"Great God! Lower the boats!
Lower the boats! For God's sake lower
the boats!"</p>
<p>In the Secret Room the real Prester
Kleig spoke again.</p>
<p>"When the black streak leaves the
nose of the plane, after it has submerged,
Professor Maniel," said Kleig
softly, "slow your mechanism so that
we can see the whole thing in detail."</p>
<p>There came a grunted affirmative
from Professor Maniel.</p>
<p>The nose of the pictured plane tilted
over, diving down for the surface of
the sea.</p>
<p>"Now!" snapped Kleig. "Don't wait!"</p>
<p>Instantly the moving pictures on the
screen reduced their speed, and the
plane appeared to stop its sudden seaward
plunge and to drop down as lightly
as a feather. The wings of the
thing moved forward slowly, folding
into the body of the dropping plane.</p>
<p>"They fold forward," said Kleig
quietly, "so that the speed of the plane
in the take-off will snap them <i>backward</i>
into position for flying!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">N</span><span class="upper">o</span> one spoke, because the explanation
was so obvious.</p>
<p>Slowly the airplane went down to the
surface of the sea, with scarcely a
plume of spindrift leaping back after
she had struck. She dropped to ten
feet below the surface of the water, a
hundred yards off the starboard beam
of the <i>Stellar</i>, her blunt nose pointing
squarely at the side of the doomed
liner.</p>
<p>"Now," said Kleig hoarsely, "watch
closely, for God's sake!"</p>
<p>The liner rose and fell slowly. Out
of the nose of the plane, which had
now become a tiny submarine, started
a narrow tube of black, oddly like the
sepia of a giant squid. Straight toward
the side of the liner it went. Above
the rail the Secret Agents could see the
pictured form of Prester Kleig, hand
upraised. The black streak reached the
side of the <i>Stellar</i>.</p>
<p>It touched the metal plates, spreading
upon impact, growing, enlarging, to
right and left, upward and downward,
and where it touched the <i>Stellar</i> the
black of it seemed to erase that portion
of the ship. In the slow motion every
detail was apparent. At regular speed
the blotting out of the <i>Stellar</i> would
have been instantaneous.</p>
<p>Kleig saw himself rise slowly from
the vanished rail, turning over and
over, going down to the sea. He almost
closed his eyes, bit his lips to keep back
the cries of terror when he saw the
others aboard the liner rise, turn over
and over, and fly in all directions like
jackstraws in a high wind.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> ship was erased from beneath
passengers and crew, and passengers
and crew fell into the sea. Out of
the depths, from all directions, came
the starving denizens of the sea—starving
because liners now were so few.</p>
<p>"That's enough of that, Professor,"
snapped Kleig. "Now jump ahead approximately
eight hours, and see if you
can pick up that aero-sub after it
dropped me on the Jersey Coast."</p>
<p>The picture faded out quickly, the
screaming of doomed human beings, already
hours dead, called back to apparent
living by the genius of Maniel died
away, and for a space the screen was
blank.</p>
<p>Then, the sea again, storm-tossed as
before, shifting here and there as
Maniel sought in the immensity of sea
and sky for the thing he desired.</p>
<p>"Two hundred miles south by east of
New York City," he droned. "There
it is, gentlemen!"</p>
<p>They all saw it then, in full flight,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[29]</SPAN></span>
eight thousand feet above the surface
of the Atlantic, traveling south by east
at a dizzy rate of speed.</p>
<p>"Note," said Kleig, "that it keeps
safely to the low altitudes, in order to
escape the notice of regular air traffic."</p>
<p>No one answered.</p>
<p>The eyes of the Secret Agents were
on that flashing, bulbous-bodied plane
of the strange wings. It appeared to
be heading directly for some objective
which must be reached at top speed.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">F</span><span class="upper">or</span> fifteen minutes the flight continued.
Then the plane tilted
over and dived, and at an altitude still
of three thousand feet, the wings slashed
forward, clicking into their notches
in the sides of the bulbous body, with a
sound like the ratchets on subway turnstiles,
and, holding their breath, the
Secret Agents watched it plummet
down to the sea. It was traveling with
terrific speed when it struck, yet it entered
the water with scarcely a splash.</p>
<p>Then, for the first time, an audible
gasp, as that of one person, came from
the lips of the Secret Agents. For now
they could see the objective of the aero-sub.
A monster shadow in the water, at
a depth of five hundred feet. A
shadow which, as Maniel manipulated
his instruments, became a floating underwater
fortress, ten times the size of
any submarine known to the Americas.</p>
<p>Sporting like porpoises about this
held-in-suspension fortress were myriads
of other aero-subs, maneuvering by
squadrons and flights, weaving in and
out like schools of fish. The plane
which had bourne Prester Kleig
churned in between two of the formations,
and vanished into the side of the
motionless monster of the deep.</p>
<p>The striking of a deep sea bell, muted
by tons and tons of water, sounded in
the Secret Room.</p>
<p>"Don't turn it off, Maniel," said
Kleig. "There's more yet!"</p>
<p>And there was, for the sound of the
bell was a signal. The aero-subs, darting
outward from the side of the floating
fortress like fish darting out of seaweed,
were plunging up toward the surface
of the Atlantic. Breathlessly the
Secret Agents watched them.</p>
<p>They broke water like flying fish, and
their wings shot backward from their
notches in the myriad bulbous bodies
to click into place in flying position as
the scores of aero-subs took the air
above the invisible hiding places of the
mother submarine.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">t</span> eight thousand feet the aero-subs
swung into battle formation
and, as though controlled by word of
command, they maneuvered there like
one vast machine of a central control—beautiful
as the flight of swallows,
deadly as anything that flew.</p>
<p>The Secret Agents swept the cold
sweat from their brows, and sighs of
terror escaped them all.</p>
<p>At that moment came the voice, loud
in the Secret Room, which Kleig at
least immediately recognized:</p>
<p>"Well, gentlemen, are you satisfied
that resistance is futile?"</p>
<p>And Kleig whispered the name, over
and over again.</p>
<p>"Moyen! Moyen!"</p>
<p>It was Prester Kleig, Master of the
Secret Room, who was the first to regain
control after the nerve-numbing
question which, asked in far Madagascar,
was heard by the Agents in the
Secret Room.</p>
<p>"No!" he shouted. "No! No! Moyen,
in the end we will beat you!"</p>
<p>Only silence answered, but deep in
the heart of Prester Kleig sounded a
burst of sardonic laughter—the laughter
of Moyen, half-god of Asia. Then
the voice again:</p>
<p>"The attack is beginning, gentlemen!
Within an hour you will have further
evidence of the might of Moyen!"</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER VI</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>Vanishing Ships</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rester Kleig,</span> ordered to
Madagascar from the Secret
Room, had been merely an operative,
honored above others in that he had<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[30]</SPAN></span>
been one of the few, at that time, ever
to visit the Secret Room. Now, however,
because he had walked closer to
Moyen than anyone else, he assumed
leadership almost by natural right, and
the men who had once deferred to him
took orders from him.</p>
<p>"Gentlemen," he snapped, while the
last words of Moyen still hung in the
air of the Secret Room, "we must fight
Moyen from here. The best brains in
the United Americas are gathered here,
and if Moyen can be beaten—<i>if</i> he can
be beaten—he will be beaten from the
Secret Room!"</p>
<p>A sigh from the lips of Professor
Maniel. The President of the United
Americas nodded his head, as though
he too mutely gave authority into the
hands of Prester Kleig. The other
Secret Agents shifted slightly, but said
nothing.</p>
<p>"I have been away a year," said Kleig,
"as you know, and many things have
come into regular use since I left.
Professor Maniel's machine for example,
upon which he was working
when I departed under orders. There
will be further use for it in our struggle
with Moyen. Professor, will you
kindly range the ocean, beginning at
once, and see how many of these
monsters of Moyen we have to contend
with?"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rofessor Maniel</span> turned
back to his instruments, which
he fondled with gentle, loving hands.</p>
<p>"We have nothing with which to
combat the attacking forces of Moyen,"
went on Kleig, "save antiquated airplanes,
and such obsolete warships as
are available. These will be mere fodder
for the guns, or rays, or whatever
it is that Moyen uses in his aero-subs.
Thousands, perhaps millions, of human
lives will be lost; but better this than
that Moyen rule the West! Better this
than that our women be given into the
hands of this mob as spoils of war!"</p>
<p>From the Secret Agents a murmur
of assent.</p>
<p>And then, that voice again, startling,
clear, with the slightest suggestion of
some Oriental accent, in the Secret
Room.</p>
<p>"Do not depend too much, gentlemen,"
it said, "upon your antiquated
warships! See, I am merciful, in that
I do not allow you to send them against
me loaded with men to be slaughtered
or drowned! Professor Maniel, I would
ask you to turn that plaything of yours
and gaze upon the fleet of obsolete
ships anchored in Hampton Roads! In
passing, Professor, I venture to guess
that the secret of how I am able to
talk with you gentlemen, here in your
Secret Room, is no secret at all to you.
Now look!"</p>
<p>The Secret Agents gasped again, in
consternation.</p>
<p>From the white lips of mouselike
Maniel came mumbled words, even as
his hands worked with lightning speed.</p>
<p>"His machine is simply a variation of
my own. And, gentlemen, compatriots,
with it he could as easily project himself,
bodily, here into the room with
us!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">omething</span> like a suppressed
scream from one of the men
present. A cold hand of ice about the
heart of Prester Kleig. But the words
of Professor Maniel were limned on
the retina of his brain in letters of fire.
Suppose Moyen <i>were</i> to project himself
into the Secret Room....</p>
<p>But he would not. He was no fool,
and even these Secret Agents, most
of whom were old and no longer strong,
would have torn him limb from limb.
But those words of Maniel set whirling
once more, and in a new direction,
the thoughts of Prester Kleig.</p>
<p>"Mr. President, gentlemen...." It
was the voice of Professor Maniel.</p>
<p>All eyes turned again to the screen
upon which the professor worked his
miracles, which today were commonplaces,
which yesterday had been undreamed
of. Every Secret Agent recognized
the outlines of Hampton Roads,
with Norfolk and its towering buildings
in the background, and the obsolete<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[31]</SPAN></span>
warships riding silently at anchor in
the roadstead.</p>
<p>For three years they had been there,
while a procrastinating Cabinet, Congress
and Senate had debated their
permanent disposal. They represented
millions of dollars in money, and were
utterly worthless. Prester Kleig, looking
at them now, could see them putting
out to sea, loaded with brave-visaged
men, volunteering to go to sure
destruction to feed the rapacity of
Moyen's hordes. Men going out to sea
in tubs, singing....</p>
<p>But these ships were silent. No
plumes of smoke from their funnels.
Like floating mausoleums, filled with
dead hopes, shells of past and departed
glories.</p>
<p>The beating of waves against their
sides could plainly be heard. The
anchor chains squeaked rustily in the
hawse-holes. Wind sighed through
regal, towering superstructures, and no
man walked the decks of any one of
them.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">W</span><span class="upper">ith</span> bated breath the Secret
Agents watched.</p>
<p>Why had Moyen bidden them turn
their attention to these shells of erstwhile
naval grandeur?</p>
<p>This time no gasps broke from the
lips of the Secret Agents. Not even the
sound of breathing could be heard.
Just the sighing of wind through the
superstructures of a hundred ships, the
whispering of waves against rusted
bulkheads.</p>
<p>Almost imperceptibly at first the
towering dreadnought in the foreground
began to move! Slowly, the
water swirling about her, she backed
away from her anchor, tightening the
curve of the anchor chain! Water
quivered about the point of the chain's
contact with the waves!</p>
<p>Quickly the eyes of the Secret
Agents swept along the street of ships.
The same backward motion, of dragging
against their anchor chains, was
visible at the bow of each warship!</p>
<p>With not a soul aboard them, the
ships were waking into strange and
awesome life, dragging at their anchors,
like hounds pulling at leashes to be
free and away!</p>
<p>"How are they doing it?" It was
almost a whisper from the President.</p>
<p>"Some electro-magnetic force, sir!"
stated Prester Kleig. "Professor Blaine,
that is your province! Please note what
is happening, and advise us at once if
you see how they are doing it!"</p>
<p>A grunt of affirmation from surly,
obese Professor Blaine.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">ll</span> eyes turned back again to the
miracle of the moving ships. One
by one, with crashes which echoed and
re-echoed through the Secret Room,
the anchor chains of the dreadnoughts
parted. The ends of them swung from
the prows of the warships, while the
severed portions splashed into the
Roads, and the waters hid them from
view.</p>
<p>The great dreadnought in the foreground
swung slowly about until her
prow was pointed in the direction of
the open sea, and though no sea was
running, no smoke rose from her funnels,
she got slowly, ponderously under
way, and started out the Roads. Behind
her, in formation, the other ships
swung into line.</p>
<p>In a matter of seconds, faster than
any of these vessels had ever traveled
before, they were racing in column for
the open Atlantic. And from the sound
apparatus came wails and shrieks of
terror, the lamentations of men and
women frightened as they had never
been frightened before.</p>
<p>The shores behind the moving column
of ships was moment by moment growing
blacker with people—a black sea
of people, whose faces were white as
chalk with terror.</p>
<p>But on, out to sea, moved the column
of brave ships.</p>
<p>A new note entered into the picture,
as from all sides airplanes of many
makes swooped in, and swept back and
forth over the moving ships, while
hooded heads looked out of pits, and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[32]</SPAN></span>
faces of pilots were aghast at what
they saw.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">ghost</span> column of ships, moving
out to sea, speed increasing moment
by moment unbelievably. Even
now, five minutes after the first dreadnought
had started seaward, the wake
of each ship spread away on either
hand in the two sides of a watery triangle
whose walls were a dozen feet
high—racing for the shores with all
the sullen majesty of tidal waves.</p>
<p>The crowds gave back, and their
screams rose into the air in a frightened
roar of appalling sound.</p>
<p>Even now, so rapidly did the warships
travel, many of the planes could
throttle down, so that they flew directly
above the heaving decks of the
runaway warships.</p>
<p>"Get word to them!" cried Prester
Kleig suddenly. "Get word to them
that if they follow the ships out to
sea not a pilot will escape alive!"</p>
<p>One of the Secret Agents rose and
hurried from the Secret Room, traveling
at top speed for the first of the
many doors enroute to the broadcasting
tower from which all the planes could
be reached at once. Prester Kleig
turned back to the magic screen of
Maniel.</p>
<p>The warships, water thrown aside by
the lifting thrust of their forefeet in
mountains that raced landward with
ever-increasing fury, were clearing the
Roads and swinging south by east,
heading into the wastes of the Atlantic.
As they cleared the land, and open
water for unnumbered miles lay ahead,
the speed of the mighty ships increased
to a point where they rode as high on
the water as racing launches, and the
creaking and groaning of their rusty
bolts and spars were a continual paean
of protest in the sound apparatus accompanying
the showing of the miracle
on the screen.</p>
<p>"They're heading straight for the
spot where that super-submarine lies!"
said the President, and no one answered
him.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rester Kleig,</span> watching, was
racing over in his mind what he
could recall of his country's armament.
Warships were useless, as was being
proved here before his eyes. But there
still remained airplanes, in countless
numbers, which could be diverted from
ocean travel and from routine business,
to battle this menace of Moyen.</p>
<p>But....</p>
<p>He shuddered as he pictured in his
mind's eye the meeting of his country's
flower of flying manhood with the monsters
of Moyen.</p>
<p>His eyes, as he thought, were watching
the racing of those ocean greyhounds,
out to sea. They were now
out of sight of land, and still some of
the planes followed them.</p>
<p>A half hour passed, and then....</p>
<p>The American pilots, in obedience
to the radio signals, turning back from
this strange phenomenon of the ghost
column of capital ships.</p>
<p>Simultaneously, out of the sky dead
ahead, dropped the first flight of
Moyen's aero-subs.</p>
<p>At the same moment the mysterious
power which had dragged the ships to
sea was withdrawn, and the warships,
with no hands to guide them, swung
whither they willed, and floated in as
many directions as there were ships,
under their forward momentum.
There were a score of collisions, and
some of the ships were in sinking condition
even before the aero-subs began
their labors.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p>The remaining ships floated high
out of the water, because they
carried no ballast, and from all sides
the aero-subs of Moyen settled to the
task of destruction—destruction which
was simply a warning of what was to
come: Moyen's manner of proving to
the Americas the fact that he was all-powerful.</p>
<p>"God, what fools!" cried Prester
Kleig.</p>
<p>The rearmost of the American
aviators had looked back, had seen the
first of the aero-subs drop down among<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[33]</SPAN></span>
the doomed ships. Instantly he turned
out to sea again, signalling as he
did so to the nearest other planes.
And in spite of the radio warning a
hundred planes answered that signal
and swept back to investigate this new
mystery.</p>
<p>"They're going to death!" groaned
the President.</p>
<p>"Yes," said Kleig, softly, "but it
saves us ordering others to death.
Perhaps we may learn something of
value as we watch them die!"</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER VII</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>Golden Oblivion</i></h3>
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">his,"</span> said Prester Kleig, as
coldly precise as a judge pronouncing
sentence of death, "will precipitate
the major engagement with
Moyen's forces. The fools, to rush in
like this, when they have been warned!
But even so, they are magnificent!"</p>
<p>The pilots of the aero-subs must instantly
have noticed the return of the
American pilots, for some of the aero-subs
which had dropped to the ocean's
surface rose again almost instantly,
and swept into battle formation above
the drifting hulks of the warships.</p>
<p>The Americans were wary. They
drew together like frightened chickens
when a hawk hovers above them, and
watched the activities of the aero-subs,
every move of each one being at the
same time visible and audible to the
Secret Agents in the Capitol's Secret
Room.</p>
<p>The aero-subs which had submerged
singled out their particular prey among
the floating ships, and the Secret
Agents, trying to see how each separate
act of destruction was accomplished,
watched the aero-sub in the
foreground, which happened to be concentrating
on the dreadnought which
had led the ghost-march of the warships
out to sea.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> aero-sub circled the swaying
dreadnought as a shark circles
a wreck, and through the walls of the
aero-sub the watchers in the Secret
Room could see the four-man crew of
the thing. Grim faced men, men of
the Orient they plainly were, coldly
concentrating on the work in hand.
Their faces were those of men who are
merciless, even brutal, with neither
heart nor compassion of any kind for
weaker ones. One man maneuvered
the aero-sub, while the other three concentrated
on the apparatus in the nose
of the hybrid vessel.</p>
<p>"See," spoke Prester Kleig again, "if
you can tell what manner of ray they
use, and how it is projected. That's
your province, General Munson!"</p>
<p>From the particular Secret Agent
named, who was expert for war in the
membership of the Secret Room, came
a short grunt of affirmation. A few
murmured words.</p>
<p>"I'll be able to tell more about it
when I see how they operate when they
are flying. That black streak under
water ... well, I must see it out of
the water, and then...."</p>
<p>But here General Munson ended, for
the aero-sub which they were especially
watching had got into action against
the dreadnought.</p>
<p>The aero-sub was motionless and
submerged just off the port bow of the
dreadnought. The three men inside
the aero-sub were working swiftly and
efficiently with the complicated but
minute machinery in the nose of their
transport.</p>
<p>"It can be controlled, then, this ray,"
said Munson, interrupting himself.
"Watch!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">F</span><span class="upper">rom</span> the nose of the aero-sub
leaped, like a streak of black
lightning, that ebon agency of death.
It struck the prow of the battleship—and
the prow, as far aft as the well-deck,
simply vanished from sight, disintegrated!
It was as though it had
never been, and for a second, so swiftly
had it happened, the water of the ocean
held the impression that portion of the
warship had made—as an explosive
leaves a crater in the soil of earth!<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[34]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>Then a drumming roar as the sea
rushed in to claim its own. The roaring,
as of a Niagara, as the waters
claimed the ship, rushing down passageways
into the hold, possessing the
warship with all the invincible, speedy
might of the sea.</p>
<p>Mingled with this roaring was the
shivering, vibratory sound which Prester
Kleig had experienced in his half-dream.
The sound was so intense that
it fairly rocked the Secret Room to its
furthermost cranny.</p>
<p>For a second the dreadnought,
wounded to death, seemed to shudder,
to hesitate, then to move backward as
though wincing from her death blow.
It was the pound of the inrushing
waters which did it. Then up came
the stern of the mighty ship, as she
started her last long plunge into the
depths.</p>
<p>But attention had swung to another
warship, on the starboard beam of
which another aero-sub had taken up
position. Again the ebon streak of
death from her blunt nose, smashing in
and through the warship, directly
amidships, cutting her in twain as
though the black streak had been a pair
of shears, the warship a strip of tissue
paper.</p>
<p>Up went the prow and the stern of
this one, and together, the water separating
the two parts as it rushed into
the gap, the broken warship went down
to its final resting place.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">bruptly</span> Professor Maniel
swung back to the American
planes which had come back to investigate
the activities of the aero-subs, and
on the screen, in the midst of the battle
formation into which the pilots had
swept to hurriedly, the Secret Agents
could see the faces of those pilots....</p>
<p>White as chalk with fear, mouths
open in gasping unbelief. One man, a
pale-faced youth, was the first to recover.
He stared around at his compatriots,
and plainly through the sound
apparatus in the Secret Room came his
swift radio signals.</p>
<p>"Attack! Who will follow me
against these people?"</p>
<p>His signals were very plain. So,
too, were the answers of the other
pilots, and the heart of Prester Kleig
swelled with pride as he listened to the
answering signals—and counted them,
discovered that every last pilot there
present elected to stay with this youngster,
to avenge their country for this
contemptuous insult which had been
put upon her by the rape of Hampton
Roads.</p>
<p>Into swift formation they swept, and
with these planes—all planes in use
were required by franchise of operating
companies to be equipped for the
emergencies of war—swung into an
echelon formation, the youthful pilot
leading by mutual consent.</p>
<p>They swept at full speed toward the
warships, four of which had by this
time been sent to destruction—one of
which had appeared to vanish utterly
in the space of a single heartbeat, so
quickly that for a second or two the
shape of its bilge, the bulge of its keel,
was visible in the face of the deep—and
openly challenged the aero-subs.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">M</span><span class="upper">uzzles</span> of compressed air guns
projected from the wing-tips of
the planes. Buttons were pressed
which elevated the muzzles of guns arranged
to fire upward from either side
the fighting pits, twin guns that were
fired downward from the same central
magazine—the only guns in use in the
Americas which fired in opposite directions
at the same time.</p>
<p>But for a few moments the aero-subs
refused combat. Their speed was terrific,
dazzling. They eluded the
thrusts, the dives and plunges of the
American ships as easily as a swallow
eludes the dive of a buzzard.</p>
<p>It came to Prester Kleig, however,
that the aero-subs were merely playing
with the Americans; that when they
elected to move, the planes would be
blasted from the sky as easily as the
warships were being erased from the
surface of the Atlantic.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[35]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>One by one, as methodically as machines,
the aero-sub pilots blasted the
warships into nothingness. They had
their orders, and they went about their
performance with a rigidity of discipline
which astounded the Secret
Agents. They had been ordered to
destroy the warships, and they were
doing that first—would go on to completion
of this task, no matter how
many American planes buzzed about
their ears.</p>
<p>But one by one as the warships sank,
the aero-subs which had either sunk or
erased them made the surface and leaped
into space with a snapping back of
wings that was horribly businesslike
as to sound, and climbed up to take
part in the fight against the American
planes, which must inevitably come.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> last warship, cut squarely in
two from stem to stern along her
center, as though split thus by a bolt
of lightning, fell apart like pieces of
cake, and splashed down, sinking away
while the spume of her disintegration
rolled back from her fallen sides in
white-crested waves.</p>
<p>"It exemplifies the policies of
Moyen," said Prester Kleig, "for his
conquest of the world is a conquest of
destruction."</p>
<p>The last aero-sub took to the sky,
and the Americans rushed into battle
with fine disregard for what they knew
must be certain death. They were not
fools, exactly, and they had seen, but
not understood, the manner in which
those gallant old hounds of the sea had
been erased from existence.</p>
<p>But in they went, plunging squarely
into the heart of the aero-subs' leading
formation, which formation consisted
of three aero-subs, flying a wing and
wing formation.</p>
<p>The young American signaled with
upraised hand, and the American pilots
made their first move. Every plane
started rolling, at dazzling speed, on
the axis of its fuselage, while bullets
spewed from the guns that fired
through the propellers.</p>
<p>Bullets smashed into the leading
aero-subs, with no apparent effect,
though for a second it seemed that the
central aero-sub of the leading formation
hesitated for a moment in flight.</p>
<p>Then, swift as had that black streak
flashed from the nose of aero-subs submerged,
a streak darted from the nose
of the central aero-sub, and glistened
in the sun like molten gold!</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">t</span> touched the youngster who had
called for volunteers for his attack
against this strange enemy. It
touched his plane—and the plane
vanished instantly, while for a fraction
of a second the pilot was visible
in his place, in the posture of sitting,
hand on a row of buttons which did
not exist, head forward slightly as he
aimed guns that had vanished.</p>
<p>Then the pilot, still living, apparently
unhurt, plunged down eight thousand
feet to the sea. The water geysered
up as he struck, then closed over
the spot, and the gallant American
youngster had become the first victim
in battle of the monsters of Moyen.</p>
<p>Victim of a slender lancet of what
seemed to be golden lightning.</p>
<p>"He could have killed the pilot aloft
there," came quietly from Munson, "but
he chose to pull his plane away from
around him! Their control of the ray
is miraculous!"</p>
<p>As though to confirm the statement
of Munson, the leading aero-sub struck
again, a second plane. The plane
vanished, but from the spot where it
had flown, not even a bit of metal or of
man sufficiently large to be seen by the
delicate recording instruments of
Maniel dropped out of the sky.</p>
<p>The ray of gold was a ray of
oblivion if the minions of Moyen
willed.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER VIII</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>Charmion</i></h3>
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rester Kleig,"</span> came suddenly
into the Secret Room the
voice of far distant Moyen, "you will at<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[36]</SPAN></span>
once make a change in your rules regarding
the admission of other than
Secret Agents to the Secret Room.
You will at once see that Charmion
Kane, sister of your friend, is allowed
to enter!"</p>
<p>"God Almighty!" A cry of agony
from the lips of Prester Kleig. He had
not forgotten Charmion, but simply had
had to move so swiftly that he had put
her out of his mind. For a year he had
not seen her, and an hour or two more
could not matter greatly.</p>
<p>"And her brother Carlos," went on
the voice, "see that he, too, is admitted.
I wish, for certain reasons, that Charmion
come unharmed through the
direct attack I am about to make
against your country. I confess that,
save for this ability to speak to you, I
am unable to work any damage to the
Secret Room, which is therefore the
safest place for Charmion Kane!
Carlos Kane is being spared because
he is her brother!"</p>
<p>There was no mistaking the import
of this sinister command from Moyen.
He had singled out Charmion, the best
beloved of Prester Kleig, for his attentions,
and that he was sure of the success
of his attack against the United
Americas was proved by the calm assurance
of his voice, and the fact that,
concentrating on the attack as he must
be, he still found time for a thought of
Charmion Kane.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> hand of ice which had seldom
been absent from the heart of
Kleig since he had first seen and heard
the voice of Moyen gripped him anew.
Blood pounded maddeningly in his
temples. Cold sweat bathed his body.</p>
<p>But the rest of the Secret Agents,
save to freeze into immobility when the
hated voice spoke, gave no sign. They
had worries of their own, for no instructions
had been given that they
bring their own loved ones into the
sanctuary of the Secret Room.</p>
<p>As though answering the thoughts
of the others, the hated voice spoke
again.</p>
<p>"I regret that I cannot arrange for
sanctuary for the loved ones of all of
you, for you are gallant antagonists;
why save the few, when the many must
perish? For I know you will not surrender,
however much I have proved to
you that I am invincible. But Charmion
Kane must be saved."</p>
<p>"God!" whispered Kleig. "God!"</p>
<p>Then spoke General Munson.</p>
<p>"I think this ray which the Moyenites
use is a variation of the principle
used in the intricate machinery of Professor
Maniel, though how they render
it visible I do not know. But it doesn't
matter, and may be only a blind!
You'll note that when the black streak,
or the golden ray, strikes anything that
thing instantly disintegrates. A certain
pitch of resonance will break a
pane of glass. It's a matter of vibration,
solely, wherein the molecules
composing any object animate or inanimate,
are hurled in all directions instantaneously.</p>
<p>"Professor Maniel's apparatus, the
Vibration-Retarder, is able to recapture
the vibrations, speeding outward endlessly
through space, and to reconstruct,
and <i>draw back</i> to visibility the
objects destroyed by this visible vibratory
ray, whatever it is. This problem,
then, falls into the province of Professor
Maniel!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">hrough</span> the heart and soul of
Prester Kleig there suddenly
flowed a great surge of hope.</p>
<p>"General Munson, if you will operate
the machinery of the Vibration-Retarder,
I wish to talk with Professor
Maniel!"</p>
<p>Instantly, efficiently, without a word
in reply to the eager command of Prester
Kleig, General Munson relieved
Professor Maniel at the apparatus
which Maniel called the Vibration-Retarder,
his invention which he had
combined with audible teleview to complete
this visual miracle of the Secret
Room. Professor Maniel stepped to
where Prester Kleig was sitting.</p>
<p>Prester Kleig put fingers to his lips<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[37]</SPAN></span>
for silence, and an expression of surprise
crossed the wrinkled dead-white
face of the Professor.</p>
<p>Before Kleig could speak, however,
there came a signal from somewhere
outside the Secret Room, a signal
which said that the doors were being
opened and that a personage was coming.
The Secret Agents looked at one
another in surprise, for every man who
had a right to be inside the Secret
Room was already present.</p>
<p>"I know," said Kleig, his face a mask
of terror. "It is Charmion and Carlos
Kane! Moyen, the devil, has managed
to make sure of obedience to his
orders!"</p>
<p>The Secret Agents turned back to
the screen, upon which the view of the
first aerial brush of the American flyers
with the minions of Moyen, in their
aero-subs, was drawing to a terrible
close.</p>
<p>For, as the aero-sub commanders had
played with the warships, which had
no human beings aboard them, so now
did they play with the planes of the
Americas.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">O</span><span class="upper">ne</span> American flyer, startled into
a frenzy by the fate of his fellows,
put his helicopter into action,
and leaped madly out of the midst of
the battle. Instantly an aero-sub
zoomed, skyward after him. Again
that golden streak of light from the
nose of an aero-sub, and the helicopter
vanes and the slender staff upon whose
tip they whirled vanished, shorn short
off above the vane-grooves in the top of
the wing!</p>
<p>The plane dropped away, fluttering
like a falling leaf for a moment, before
the aviator started his three propellers
again.</p>
<p>A cheer broke from the lips of Prester
Kleig as he watched. The commander
of that particular aero-sub, apparently
contemptuous of this flyer
who had tried to cut out of the fight,
allowed him to fall away unmolested—and
the American, driven berserk by
the casual, contemptuous treatment accorded
him by this strange enemy,
zoomed the second his propellers whirred
into top-speed action, and raced up
the sky toward the belly of the aero-sub.</p>
<p>"If only the aero-sub has a blind
spot!" cried Prester Kleig.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">n</span> that instant a roaring crash
sounded in the Secret Room as the
American plane, going full speed,
crashed, propellers foremost, into the
belly of the aero-sub.</p>
<p>And the aero-sub, whose brothers
had seemed until this moment invincible,
did not escape the wrath of the
American—though the American went
into oblivion with it!</p>
<p>For, welded together, American
plane and aero-sub started the eight
thousand feet plunge downward to the
sea!</p>
<p>"Watch!" shrieked Munson.
"Watch!"</p>
<p>As the aero-sub and the plane
plunged down through the formation
of fighters, the aero-sub pilots saw it,
and they fled in wild dismay and at top
speed from their falling compatriot.
Why? For a moment it was not apparent.
And then it was.</p>
<p>For out of the body of the doomed
aero-subs came sheets of golden flame!
Not the flames of fire, but the golden
sheen of that streak which the aero-subs
had used against the American
planes already out of the fight! The
American flyer had crashed into the
container, whatever it was, that harnessed
the agency through which the
minions of Moyen had destroyed the
<i>Stellar</i>, and the battleships raped from
Hampton Roads!</p>
<p>"It is liquid, then!" shrieked Munson.</p>
<p>And it seemed to be. For a second
the golden mantle, strange, awe-inspiring,
bathed and rendered invisible
the aero-sub and the plane which had
slain her. Then the golden flame
vanished utterly, instantly—and in the
air where it had been there was nothing!
The aero-sub was gone, and the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[38]</SPAN></span>
plane whose mad charge had erased
her.</p>
<p>"Her own death dealing agency
destroyed her!" shrieked Munson.
"And the other aero-subs cut away
from the fight to save themselves, because
they too carry death and destruction
within them!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">hen</span> the inner door of the Secret
Room opened and two people
entered. One of them, a dazzling
beauty with glorious black hair and the
tread of a princess, a picture of perfection
from jeweled sandals to coiffured
hair, was Charmion Kane. Behind
her came her brother, whose face
was chalky white. But Charmion, as
she crossed to Kleig and kissed him,
while her eyes were luminous with
love, held her head proudly high, imperious.</p>
<p>"I know," she said softly to Kleig,
"and I am not afraid! I know you will
prevent it!"</p>
<p>Kleig waved the two to chairs and
turned again to Professor Maniel.</p>
<p>On a piece of paper he wrote swiftly,
using a mode of shorthand known
only to the Secret Agents.</p>
<p>"Professor," he wrote feverishly,
"can you reverse the process used in
your Vibration-Retarder? Tell me
with your eyes, for Moyen may even
know this writing, and I am sure he
hears what we say here, may even be
able to see us?"</p>
<p>Professor Maniel started and stared
deeply into the eyes of Prester Kleig.
His face grew thoughtful. He brushed
his slender hand over the massive dome
of his brow. Hope burned high in the
heart of Prester Kleig.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">hen,</span> despite Kleig's instructions
to answer merely by the expression
in his eyes, Professor Maniel leaned
forward and wrote quickly on the
piece of paper Kleig had used.</p>
<p>"Two hours!"</p>
<p>Nothing else, no explanations; but
Prester Kleig knew. Maniel believed
he could do it, but he needed two hours
in which to perfect his theory and
make it workable. Kleig knew that
had he been able to do it in two years,
or two decades, it still would have
been in the nature of a miracle.</p>
<p>But two hours....</p>
<p>And Moyen had said that he was preparing
to attack at once.</p>
<p>In two hours Moyen, unless the
Americas fought against him with
every resource at their command, could
depopulate half the Western World.
Kleig looked back to the screen.</p>
<p>There was not a single American
plane in the sky above the graveyard
of those vanished warships. And the
aero-subs, swift flying as the wind,
were racing back to the mother ship,
scores of miles away.</p>
<p>Munson worked with the Vibration-Retarder,
the Sound-and-Vision devices,
ranging the sea off the coast to
either side of that huge, suspended
fortress which was the mother submarine
of the aero-subs.</p>
<p>Gasps of terror, though the sight was
not unexpected, broke from the lips of
every person in the Secret Room.</p>
<p>For super-monsters of Moyen were
moving to the attack.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER IX</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>Flowers of Martyrdom</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">F</span><span class="upper">or</span> a minute the Secret Agents
were appalled by the air of might
of the deep-sea monsters of Moyen,
brought bodily, almost into the Secret
Room by the activities of General Munson
at the Sound-and-Vision apparatus.</p>
<p>Off the coast, miles away, yet looming
moment by moment larger, indicating
the deceptively swift speed of the
monsters, were scores of the great under-water
fortresses, traveling toward
the coast of the United Americas in a
far-flung formation, each submarine
separated from its neighbor to right
and left by something like a hundred
miles, easy cruising radius for the little
aero-subs carried inside the monsters.</p>
<p>That each submarine did carry such
spawn of Satan was plainly seen, for<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[39]</SPAN></span>
as the great submarines moved landward,
scores of aero-subs sported gleefully
about the mother ships. There
was no counting the number of them.</p>
<p>Two hours Maniel needed for his
labors, which meant that for two hours
the flower of the country's manhood
must try to hold in check the mighty
hordes of Moyen.</p>
<p>"Somewhere there," stated Prester
Kleig, "in one or the other of those
monsters, is Moyen himself. I know
that since he wished Charmion saved
for his attentions! Do your work with
your apparatus, Munson, while I go out
to the radio tower to broadcast an appeal
for volunteers. Charmion—Carlos...."</p>
<p>But Prester Kleig found that he
could not continue. Not that it was
necessary, for Charmion and Carlos
knew what was in his mind. Charmion
was a lady of vast intelligence, from
whom life's little ironies had not been
hidden—and Kane and Kleig had already
discussed the activities of Moyen
where women were concerned.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rester Kleig</span> hurried to the
Central Radio Tower, and as he
passed through each of the many doors
leading out to the roof of the new
Capitol Building the guards at the
doors left to form a guard for him, at
this moment the most precious man in
the country, because he knew best the
terrible trials which faced her.</p>
<p>The country was in turmoil. It
seemed almost impossible that a whole
day had passed since Prester Kleig had
returned and entered the Secret Room.
In the meantime a fleet of battleships
had been drawn by some mysterious
agency out to sea from Hampton
Roads, and a fleet of fighting planes
which had followed the ghost column
outward had not returned.</p>
<p>News-gatherers had spread the
stories, distorted and garbled, across
the western continents, and throughout
the western confederacy men, women
and children lived in the throes of the
greatest fear that had ever gripped
them. Fear held them most because
they could not give the cause of their
fear a name—save one....</p>
<p>Moyen.... And the name was on
the lips of everyone, and frenzied
woman stilled their squalling babes
with its mention.</p>
<p>No word yet from the Secret Room,
but Prester Kleig had scarcely appeared
from it than someone started
the radio signal which informed the
frenzied, waiting world of the west
that information, exact if startling,
would now be forthcoming.</p>
<p>In millions of homes, in thousands of
high-flying planes, listeners tuned in at
the clear-all hum.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rester Kleig</span> wasted no time
in preliminaries.</p>
<p>"Prester Kleig speaking. We are
threatened by Moyen, with scores of
monster submarines, each a mother
ship for scores of aero-subs, combinations
of airplanes and miniature submarines.
They are moving up on our
eastern coast, from some secret base
which we have not yet located. They
are equipped with death dealing instruments
of which we have but the
most fragmentary knowledge, and for
two hours I must call upon all flyers
to combat the menace; until the Secret
Agents, especially Professor Maniel,
have had opportunity to counteract the
minions of Moyen.</p>
<p>"Flyers of the United Americas! In
the name of our country I ask that
volunteers gather on the eastern coast,
each flyer proceeding at once to the
nearest coast-landing, after dropping
all passengers. Your commanders
have already been named by your various
organizations, as required by franchise,
and orders for the movement of
the entire winged armada will come
from this station. However, the
orders will simply be this: Hold
Moyen's forces at bay for a period of
two hours! And know that many of
you go to certain death, and make your
own decisions as to whether you shall
volunteer!"<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[40]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>This ended, Prester Kleig, excitement
mounting high, hurried back to
the Secret Room.</p>
<p>Now the public knew, and as the
American public is given to doing, it
steadied down when it knew the worst.
Fear of the unknown had changed the
public into a myriad-souled beast gone
berserk. Now that knowledge was exact
men grew calm of face, determined,
and women assumed the supporting
role which down the ages has been that
of brave women, mothers of men.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">period</span> of silence for a time
after Prester Kleig's pronouncement.</p>
<p>As he entered the first door leading
into the Secret Room, Carlos Kane met
and passed him with a smile.</p>
<p>"You called for winged volunteers,
did you not, Kleig?" he asked quietly.</p>
<p>Kleig nodded. "You are going?" he
said.</p>
<p>"Yes. It is my duty."</p>
<p>No other words were necessary, as
the men shook hands. Prester Kleig
going on to the Secret Room, Carlos
Kane going out to join the mighty
armada which must fight against the
minions of Moyen.</p>
<p>The words of Prester Kleig were
heard by the pilots of the sky-lanes.
The passenger pits, equipped with self-opening
parachutes which dropped
jumpers in series of long falls in order
to acquire swift but accurate and safe
landing—they opened at intervals in
long falls of two thousand feet, stayed
the fall, then closed again, so that
drops were almost continuous until the
last four hundred feet—and pilots,
swiftly making up their minds, dropped
their passengers, banked their
planes, and raced into the east.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">ll</span> over the Americas pilots dropped
their passengers and their
loads if their franchises called for the
carrying of freight, and banked about
to take part in the first skirmish with
the Moyenites.</p>
<p>Dropping figures almost darkened
the sky as passengers plunged downward
after the startling signal from
Washington. Flowers, which were the
umbrellas of chutes, opened and closed
like breathing winged orchids, letting
their burdens safely to earth.</p>
<p>And clouds and fleets of airplanes
came in from all directions to land, in
rows and rows which were endless,
wing and wing, along the eastern coast.</p>
<p>Prester Kleig had scarcely entered
the Secret Room than the hated voice
of Moyen again broke upon the ears of
the machinelike Secret Agents.</p>
<p>"This is madness, gentlemen! My
people will annihilate yours!"</p>
<p>But, since time for speech had
passed, not one of the Secret Agents
made answer or paid the slightest heed
to the warning, though deep in the
heart of each and every one was the belief
that Moyen spoke no more than the
truth.</p>
<p>Too, there was a growing respect for
the half-god of Asia, in that he was
good enough to warn them of the holocaust
which faced their country.</p>
<p>By hundreds and thousands, wing
and wing, airplanes dropped to the Atlantic
coast at the closest point of contact,
when the signal reached them.
At high altitudes, planes crossing the
Atlantic turned back and returned at
top speed, dropping their passengers
as soon as over land. That Moyen
made no move to prevent the return of
flyers out over the ocean, and now coming
back, was an ominous circumstance.</p>
<p>It seemed to show that he held the
American flyers, all of them, in utter
contempt.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rester Kleig</span> regarded the
time. It had been half an hour
since Moyen had spoken of attack, half
an hour since the monsters of the deep
had started the inexorable move toward
land. On the screen the submarines
were bulking larger and larger as the
moments fled, until it seemed to the
Secret Agents that the great composite
shadow of them already was sweeping
inland from the coast.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[41]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>As the coast came close ahead of the
monster subs the little aero-subs, to
the surprise of the Secret Agents, all
vanished into their respective mother
ships.</p>
<p>"But they have to use them," groaned
Munson. "For their submarines are
useless in frontal attack against our
shores!"</p>
<p>"I am not so sure of that," said
Prester Kleig. "For I have a suspicion
that those submarines have tractors
under their keels, and that they can
come out on land! If this is so the
monsters can, guarded by armour-plate,
penetrate to the very heart of our most
populated areas before their aero-subs
are released."</p>
<p>None of the Secret Agents as yet had
stopped to ponder how the monsters
had reached their positions, and why
Moyen was attacking from the east,
when the Pacific side of the continents
would have appeared to be the obvious
point of attack, and would have obviated
the necessity of long, secret under-sea
journeys wherein discovery prematurely
must have been one of the
many worries of the submarine commanders.</p>
<p>The mere fact of the presence of the
monsters was enough. What had preceded
their presence was unimportant,
save that their presence, and their near
approach to the shore undetected,
further proved the executive and planning
genius of Moyen.</p>
<p>Two miles, on an average, off the
eastern coast the submarines laid their
eggs—the aero-subs, which darted from
the sides of the mother ships in flights
and squadrons, made the surface, and
leaped into the sky.</p>
<p>Five minutes later and the signal
went forth to the phalanx of the volunteers.</p>
<p>"Take off! Fly east and engage the
enemy, and hold him in check, and the
God of our fathers go with you!"</p>
<p>One hour had passed since Moyen's
ultimatum when the first vanguard of
the American flyers, obeying the
peremptory signal, took the air and
darted eastward to meet the winged
death-harbingers of Moyen.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER X</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2">"<i>They Shall Not Pass!</i>"</h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rester Kleig's</span> heartfelt desire,
as the American flyers closed
with the first of the aero-subs, was
to go out with them and aid them in the
attack against the Moyenites. But he
knew, and it was a tacit thing, that he
best served his country from the safe
haven of the Secret Room.</p>
<p>As he watched the scenes unfold on
the screen of Maniel's genius, with occasional
glances at the somewhat mysterious
but profound and concentrated
labors of Maniel, Charmion Kane rose
from her place and came to his side.</p>
<p>Wide-eyed as she watched the joining
of battle, she stood there, her tiny
hand encased in the tense one of
Prester Kleig.</p>
<p>"You would like to be out there," she
murmured. "I know it! But your
country needs you here—and I have
already given Carlos!"</p>
<p>Prester Kleig tightened his grip on
her hand.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">here</span> was deep, silent understanding
between these two, and
Prester Kleig, in fighting against the
Moyenites, realized, even above his
realization that his labors were
primarily for the benefit of his country,
that he really matched wits with
Moyen for the sake of Charmion. Had
anyone asked him whether he would
have sacrificed her for the benefit of
his country, it would have been a difficult
question to answer.</p>
<p>He was glad that the question was
never asked.</p>
<p>"Yes, beloved," he whispered, "I
would like to be out there, but the
greatest need for me is here."</p>
<p>But even so he felt as though he was
betraying those intrepid flyers he was
sending to sure death. Yet they had
volunteered, and it was the only way.</p>
<p>Maniel, a gnomelike little man with<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[42]</SPAN></span>
a Titan's brain, labored with his calculations,
made swiftly concrete his
theories, while at the Sound-and-Vision
apparatus excitable General
Munson ranged the aerial battlefield to
see how the tide of battle ebbed and
flowed.</p>
<p>That neither side would either ask
or give quarter was instantly apparent,
for they rushed head-on to meet each
other, those vast opposing winged
armadas, at top speed, and not a single
individual swerved from his course,
though at least the Americans knew
that death rode the skyways ahead.</p>
<p>Then....</p>
<p>The battle was joined. Moyen's
forces were superior in armament.
Their sky-steeds were faster, more
readily maneuverable, though the flying
forces of the Americas in the last
five years had made vast strides in
aviation. But what the Americans
lacked in power they made up for in
fearless courage.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> plan of battle seemed automatically
to work itself out.</p>
<p>The first vanguard of American
planes came into contact with the forces
of Moyen, and from the noses of countless
aero-subs spurted that golden
streak which the Secret Agents knew
and dreaded.</p>
<p>The first flight of planes, stretching
from horizon to horizon, vanished from
the sky with that dreadful surety
which had marked the passing of the
<i>Stellar</i>, and such of those warships as
had felt the full force of the visible
ray.</p>
<p>From General Munson rose a groan
of anguish. These convertible fighting
planes had been the pride of the
heart of the old warrior. To do him
credit, however, it was the wanton, so
terribly inevitable destruction of the
flyers themselves which affected him.
It was so final, so absolute—and so utterly
impossible to combat.</p>
<p>"Wait!" snapped Prester Kleig.</p>
<p>For the intrepid flyers behind that
vanguard which had vanished had witnessed
the wholesale disintegration of
the leading element of the vast armada,
and the pilots realized on the instant
that no headlong rush into the very
noses of the aero-subs would avail anything.</p>
<p>The vast American formation broke
into a mad maelstrom of whirling, darting,
diving planes. Every third plane
plummeted downward, every second
one climbed, and the remaining ships,
even in the face of what had happened
to the vanished first flight, held steadily
to the front.</p>
<p>In this mad, seemingly meaningless
formation, they closed on the aero-subs.
Without having seen the fight,
the Americans were aping the action of
that one nameless flyer who had
charged the aero-sub that had been
destroyed.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">K</span><span class="upper">leig</span> remembered. A score of
ships had been destroyed utterly
above the graveyard of dreadnoughts,
yet only one aero-sub, and that quite
by chance, had been marked off in the
casualty column.</p>
<p>Death rode the heavens as the American
flyers went into action. For head-on
fights, flyers went in at top speed,
their planes whirling on the axes of
fuselages, all guns going. Planes were
armored against their own bullets, and
they were not under the necessity of
watching to see that they did not slay
their own friends.</p>
<p>Even so, bullets were rather ineffective
against the aero-subs, whose apparently
flimsy, almost transparent
outer covering diverted the bullets
with amazing ease.</p>
<p>A whirling maelstrom of ships. The
monsters of Moyen had drawn first
blood, if the expression may be used in
an action where no blood at all was
drawn, but machines and men simply
erased from existence.</p>
<p>Hundreds of planes already gone
when the second flight of ships closed
with the aero-subs. Yellow streaks of
death flashed from aero-sub nostrils,
but even as aero-sub operators set their<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[43]</SPAN></span>
rays into motion the American flyers
in head-on charge rolled, dived or
zoomed, and kept their guns going.</p>
<p>High above the first flight of aero-subs,
behind which another flight was
winging swiftly into action, American
flyers tilted the noses of their planes
over and dived under full power—to
sure death by suicide, though none
knew it there at the moment.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">hese</span> aero-subs could not be
driven from the sky by usual
means, and could destroy American
ships even before those planes could
come to handgrips; but they, the flyers
plainly believed, could be crashed out
of the sky and so, never guessing what
besides death in resulting crashes they
faced, the flyers above the aero-subs,
even as aero-subs in rear flashed in to
prevent, dived down straight at the
backs of the aero-subs.</p>
<p>In a hundred places the dives of the
Americans worked successfully, and
American planes crashed full and true,
full power on, into the backs of the
"flying fish." In some aero-subs the
container of the Moyen-dealing agency
apparently remained untouched, and
airplanes and aero-subs, welded together,
plunged down the invisible
skylanes into the sea.</p>
<p>Under water, some of the aero-subs
were seen to keep in motion, limping
toward the nearest mother submarines.</p>
<p>"I hope," said Prester Kleig, "the
American flyers in such cases are already dead,
for Moyen will be a maniac
in his tortures. Munson, do you hurriedly
examine the mother-subs and see
if you can locate Moyen."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">owever,</span> only a scattered aero-sub
here and there went down
without the strange substance of the
yellow ray being released. In most
cases, upon the contact of plane with
aero-sub, the aero-subs and planes were
instantly blotted from view by the yellow,
golden flames from the heart of
the winged harbingers of Moyen.</p>
<p>Golden flames, blinding in their
brightness, dropping down, mere shapeless
blotches, then fading out to nothingness
in a matter of seconds—with
aero-sub and airplane totally erased
from action and from existence.</p>
<p>The American flyers saw and knew
now the manner of death they faced.
Yet all along the battle front not an
American tried to evade the issue and
draw out of the fight. A sublime, inspiring
exhibition of mass courage
which had not been witnessed down the
years since that general engagement
which men of the time had called the
Great War.</p>
<p>Prester Kleig turned to look at
Maniel. Drops of perspiration bathed
the cheeks of the master scientist, but
his eyes were glowing like coals of
fire. His face was set in a white mask
of concentration, and Prester Kleig
knew that Maniel would find the answer
to the thing he sought if such
answer could be found.</p>
<p>Would the American flyers be able
to hold off the minions of Moyen until
Maniel was ready? The fight out there
above the waters was a terrible thing,
and the Americans fought and died
like men inspired, yet inexorably the
winged armada of Moyen, preceded by
those licking golden tongues, was moving
landward.</p>
<p>"Great God!" cried Munson. "Look!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">here</span> was really no need for the
order, for every Secret Agent saw
as soon as did Munson. Under the sea,
just off the coast, the mother-subs had
touched their blunt nose against the
upward shelving of the sea bottom—had
touched bottom, and were slowly
but surely following the underwater
curve of the land, up toward the surface,
like unbelievable antediluvian
monsters out of some nightmare.</p>
<p>"Yes," said Kleig quietly, "those
monsters of Moyen can move on land,
and the aero-subs can operate from
them as easily on land as under water."</p>
<p>Kleig regarded the time, whirled to
look at Professor Maniel.</p>
<p>One hour and forty minutes had<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[44]</SPAN></span>
passed since Maniel had begged for
two hours in which to prepare some
mode of effectively combatting the
might of Moyen. Twenty minutes to
go; yet the mother-subs would be
ashore, dragging their sweating, monstrous
sides out of the deep, within
ten minutes!</p>
<p>Ten minutes ashore and there was
no guessing the havoc they could cause
to the United Americas!</p>
<p>"Hurry, Maniel! Hurry! Hurry!" said
Prester Kleig.</p>
<p>But he spoke the words to himself,
though even had he spoken them aloud
Maniel would not have heard. For
Maniel, for two hours, had closed his
mind to everything that transpired
outside his own thoughts, devoted to
foiling the power of Moyen.</p>
<p>"I've found him!" snapped Munson.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> pointed with a shaking forefinger
to one of the mother-subs
crawling up the slant of the ocean bed,
twisted one of the little nubs of the
Sound-and-Vision apparatus, and the
angelic face and Satanic eyes, the
twisted body, of Moyen came into
view.</p>
<p>The face was calm with dreadful purpose,
and Moyen stood in the heart of
one of his monsters, his eyes turned
toward the land. With a gasp of terror,
dreadfully afraid for the first time,
Prester Kleig turned and looked into
the eyes of Charmion....</p>
<p>"No," she said. "It will never happen.
I have faith in you!"</p>
<p>There were still ten minutes of the
two hours left when the mother-subs
broke water and started crawling inland,
swiftly, surely, without faltering
in the slightest as they changed their
element from water to land.</p>
<p>As though their appearance had been
the signal, the aero-subs in action
against the first line of American
planes broke out of the one-sided fight
and dived for their mother ships, while
a mere handful of the American planes
started back for home to prepare anew
to continue the struggle.</p>
<p>Prester Kleig gave the signal to the
second monster armada which had remained
in reserve.</p>
<p>"Do everything in your power to
halt the march of Moyen's amphibians!"</p>
<p>Ten minutes to go, and Professor
Maniel still labored like a Titan.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER XI</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>Caucasia Falls Silent</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">s</span> the scores of amphibian monsters
came lumbering forth upon dry
land it became instantly apparent why
the aero-subs had returned to the
mother ships. For a few moments, out
of the water, the amphibians were almost
helpless, with practically no way
of attack or defense—as helpless as
huge turtles turned legs up.</p>
<p>But as each aero-sub entered its
proper slot in the side of the mother
amphibian, it was turned about and the
nose thrust back into the opening,
which closed down to fit tightly about
the nose of the aero-sub, so that those
flame-breathing monsters protruded
from the sides of the amphibians in
many places—transforming the amphibians
into monsters with hundreds
of golden, licking tongues!</p>
<p>As, with each and every aero-sub
in place, the amphibians started moving
inland, Professor Maniel made his
first move. With the tiny apparatus
upon which he had been working, he
stepped to the table before the Sound-and-Vision
apparatus and spoke softly
to his compatriots.</p>
<p>"Gentlemen," he said, "I have finished,
and it will work effectively!"</p>
<p>Though Maniel spoke softly, it was
plain to be seen that he was proud of
his accomplishment, which remained only
to be attached to start performance.</p>
<p>A matter of seconds....</p>
<p>Yet during those seconds was the
real might, the real power for utter
devastation, of Moyen fully exposed!</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> amphibians got under way as
the airplanes of the Americas
swept into the fight.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[45]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>From the sides of the monsters
licked out those golden tongues of
flame—and from the front.</p>
<p>Half a dozen amphibians slipped into
New York from the harbor side and
started into the heart of the city. And
between the time when Maniel had
said he was ready and the moment
when he made his first active move
against Moyen, a half-dozen skyscrapers
vanished into nothingness, the spots
where they had stood swept as clear of
debris as though the land had never
been reclaimed from Nature!</p>
<p>None was ever destined to know how
many lives were lost in that first attack
of the monsters of the golden, myriad
tongues; but the monsters struck in the
midst of a working day when the skyscrapers
were filled with office workers.</p>
<p>And resolve struck deep into the
hearts of the Secret Agents: if Moyen
were turned back, he must be made to
pay for the slaughter.</p>
<p>A matter of seconds....</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">hen</span> a moment of deathly silence
as Munson gave way at the screen
for the gnomelike little Professor
Maniel.</p>
<p>"Now, gentlemen!" snapped Maniel.
"If my theory is correct," manipulating
instruments with lightning speed as he
talked, "the reversion of the principle
of my Vibration-Retarder—which captures
vibrations speeding outward from
the earth and transforms them once
again into sound and pictures audible
and visible to the human ear—this apparatus
will disintegrate the monsters
as our boats and planes were disintegrated!</p>
<p>"In this I have even been compelled
to manipulate in the matter of
time! I must not only defeat and annihilate
the minions of Moyen, but
must work from a mathematical absurdity,
so that at the moment of impact
that moment itself must become
part of the past, sufficiently remote to
remove the monsters at such distance
from the earth that not even the mighty
genius of Moyen can return them!"</p>
<p>The whirring, gentle as the whirring
of doves' wings. In the center of the
picture on the screen were those half-dozen
amphibians laying waste Manhattan.
Maniel set his intricate, delicate
machinery into motion.</p>
<p>Instantly the amphibians there
seemed to become misty, shadowy, and
to lift out of Manhattan up above the
roof-tops of skyscrapers still remaining,
nebulous and wraithlike as ghost-shrouds—yet
swinging outward from
the earth with speed almost too swift
for the eye to detect.</p>
<p>But where the amphibians had rested
there stood, reclined—in all sorts of
postures, surprising and even a bit
ridiculous—the men of Moyen who had
operated the monsters of Moyen!</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">F</span><span class="upper">rom</span> the Central Radio tower
went forth a mighty voice of command
to the planes which had been
engaging the aero-subs off the coast.</p>
<p>"Slay! Slay!"</p>
<p>Down flashed the planes of the
Americas, and their guns were blazing,
inaudibly, but none the less deadly of
aim and of purpose, straight into the
midst of the men of Moyen who had
thus been left marooned and almost
helpless with the vanishing of their
amphibians.</p>
<p>And, noting how they fell in strangled,
huddled heaps before the vengeful
fire of the American planes, the Secret
Agents sighed, and Maniel, his face
alight with the pride of accomplishment,
switched to another point along
the coast.</p>
<p>And as a new group of the monsters
of Moyen came into view, and Maniel
bent to his labors afresh, the hated
voice of the master mobster broke once
more in the Secret Room.</p>
<p>"Enough, Kleig! Enough! We will
surrender to save lives! I stipulate
only that my own life be spared!"</p>
<p>To which Prester Kleig made instant
reply.</p>
<p>"Did you offer us choice of surrender?
Did you spare the lives of our people
which, with your control of your<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[46]</SPAN></span>
golden rays, you could easily have
done? No! Nor will we spare lives,
least of all the life of Moyen!"</p>
<p>The whirring again, as of the whirring
of doves' wings. More metal
monsters, even as golden tongues
spewed forth from their many sides,
vanished from view, leaping skyward,
while the operators of them were left
to the mercies of the remaining airmen
of the Americans.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">V</span><span class="upper">oicelessly</span> the word went
forth:</p>
<p>"Slay! Slay!"</p>
<p>It was Charmion who begged for
mercy for the vanquished as, one by
one, as surely as fate, the monsters
with their contained aero-subs were
blotted out, leaving pilots and operators
behind them. Down upon these dropped
the airmen of the West, slaying without
mercy....</p>
<p>"Please, lover!" Charmion whispered.
"Spare them!"</p>
<p>"Even...?" he began, thinking of
Moyen, who would have taken Charmion.
He felt her shudder as she read
his mind, understood what he would
have asked.</p>
<p>"There he is!" came softly from
Munson.</p>
<p>An amphibian had just been disintegrated,
had just climbed mistily, swiftly,
into invisibility in the skies. And
there in the midst of the conquerors
left behind, his angel's face set in a
moody mask, his pale eyes awful with
fear, his misshapen body sagging, terrible
in its realization of failure, was
Moyen!</p>
<p>Even as Kleig prepared to give the
mercy signal, a plane dived down on
the group about Moyen, and the Secret
Agents could see the hand of the pilot,
lifted high, as though he signaled.</p>
<p>The plane was a Mayther! The pilot
was Carlos Kane!</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">J</span><span class="upper">ust</span> as Kane went into action, and
the noiseless bullets from his ship
crashed into that twisted body, causing
it to jump and twitch with the might
of them, Prester Kleig gave the signal.</p>
<p>Even as the figure of Moyen crashed
to the soil and the man's soul quitted
its mortal casement, Kleig commanded:</p>
<p>"Spare all who surrender! Make them
prisoners, to be used to repair the
damage they have done to our country!
Guards will be instantly placed over
the amphibians and the aero-subs—for
the day may come when we shall need
to know their secrets!"</p>
<p>And, as men, hands lifted high in
token of surrender, quitted the now
motionless amphibians, and flyers
dropped down to make them prisoners,
Maniel sighed, pressed various buttons
on his apparatus, and the mad scene
of carnage they had witnessed for
hours faded slowly out, and darkness
and silence filled the Secret Room.</p>
<p>But darkness is the joy of lovers,
and in the midst of silence that was
almost appalling by contrast, Kleig and
Charmion were received into each
other's arms.</p>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<div class="border3" style="width: 500px;">
<h3>Everyone Is Invited</h3>
<h3><i>To "Come Over in</i></h3>
<h2>'THE READERS' CORNER'"!</h2></div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<hr />
<h2 class="chapter3"><SPAN name="Vampires_of_Venus" id="Vampires_of_Venus"></SPAN>Vampires of Venus</h2>
<h2 class="chapter"><i>By Anthony Pelcher</i></h2>
<div class="image">
<ANTIMG src="images/i047.jpg" width-obs="516" height-obs="583" alt="" title="" /></div>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>He seized a short knife<br/> and threw himself forward.</i></h3>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="sidenote">Leslie Larner, an entomologist borrowed
from the Earth, pits himself against the
night-flying vampires that are ravaging
the inhabitants of Venus.</div>
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">t</span> was as if someone had thrown<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[47]</SPAN></span>
a bomb into a Quaker meeting,
when adventure suddenly began to
crowd itself into the life of the
studious and methodical Leslie Larner,
professor of entomology.</p>
<p>Fame had been
his since early
manhood, when he
began to distinguish
himself in
several sciences,
but the adventure
and thrills he had longed for had always
fallen to the lot of others.</p>
<p>His father, a college professor, had
left him a good working brain and nothing
else. Later his
mother died and
he was left with
no relatives in the
world, so far as
he knew. So he
gave his life over
to study and hard work.</p>
<p>Still youthful at twenty-five, he was<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[48]</SPAN></span>
hoping that fate would "give him a
break." It did.</p>
<p>He was in charge of a Government
department having to do with Oriental
beetles, Hessian flies, boll weevils and
such, and it seemed his life had been
just one bug after another. He took
creeping, crawling things seriously and
believed that, unless curbed, insects
would some day crowd man off the
earth. He sounded an alarm, but humanity
was not disturbed. So Leslie
Larner fell back on his microscope and
concerned himself with saving cotton,
wheat and other crops. His only
diversion was fishing for the elusive
rainbow trout.</p>
<p>He managed to spend a month each
year in the Colorado Rockies angling
for speckled beauties.</p>
<p>Larner was anything but a clock-watcher,
but on a certain bright day
in June he was seated in his laboratory
doing just that.</p>
<p>"Just five minutes to go," he mused.</p>
<p>It was just 4:25 P. M. He had
finished his work, put his affairs in
order, and in five minutes would be
free to leave on a much needed and
well earned vacation. His bags were
packed and at the station. His fishing
tackle, the pride of his young life, was
neatly rolled in oiled silk and stood
near at hand.</p>
<p>"I'll just fill my calabash, take one
more quiet smoke, and then for the
mountains and freedom," he told himself.
He settled back with his feet on
his desk. He half closed his eyes in
solid comfort. Then the bomb fell and
exploded.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">B</span><span class="upper">-r-r-r-r!</span></p>
<p>The buzzer on his desk buzzed
and his feet came off the desk and hit
the floor with a thud. His eyes popped
open and the calabash was immediately
laid aside.</p>
<p>That buzzer usually meant business,
and it would be his usual luck to have
trouble crash in on him just as he was
on the edge of a rainbow trout paradise.</p>
<p>A messenger was ushered into the
room by an assistant. The boy handed
him an envelope, said, "No answer,"
and departed.</p>
<p>Larner tore open the envelope lazily.
He read and then re-read its contents,
while a look of puzzled surprise disturbed
his usually placid countenance.
He spread the sheet of paper out on his
desk, and for the tenth time he read:</p>
<div class="block" style="margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em;"><p>Confidential.</p>
<p>Memorize this address and
destroy this paper:</p>
<p>Tula Bela, 1726 88th Street,
West, City of Hesper, Republic
of Pana, Planet Venus.</p>
<p>Will meet you in the Frying
Pan.</p>
</div>
<p>That was all. It was enough.
Larner lost his temper. He crumpled
the paper and tossed it in the waste
basket. He was not given to profanity,
but he could say "Judas Priest" in a
way that sizzled.</p>
<p>"Judas Priest!" he spluttered. "Anyone
who would send a man a crazy
bunch of nonsense like that, at a time
like this, ought to be snuffed out like
a beetle!</p>
<p>"'Meet you in the Frying Pan,'" he
quoted. Then he happened to recall
something. "By golly, there is a fishing
district in Colorado known as the
Frying Pan. That's not so crazy, but
the planet Venus part surely is
cuckoo."</p>
<p>He fished the paper out of the
waste basket, found the envelope,
placed the strange message within and
put it in his inside coat pocket. Then
he seized his suitcase and fishing
tackle, and, rushing out, hailed a taxi.
Not long after he was on his way west
by plane.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">s</span> the country unrolled under him
he retrieved the strange note
from his pocket. He read it again and
again. Then he examined the envelope.
It was an ordinary one of good quality,
designed for business rather than social
usage. The note paper appeared<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[49]</SPAN></span>
quite different. It was unruled, pure
white, and of a texture which might be
described as pebbly. It was strongly
made, and of a nature unlike any paper
Larner had ever seen before. It appeared
to have been made from a fiber
rather than a pulp.</p>
<p>"Wonder who wrote it?" Larner
asked himself. "It is beautiful handwriting,
masculine yet artistic. Wonder
where he got the Frying Pan idea?
At any rate, I'm not going to the Frying
Pan this year—I'm camping on
Tennessee Creek, in Lake County,
Colorado. The country there is more
beautiful and restful.</p>
<p>"But this street address on the
planet Venus. Seems to me I read
somewhere that Marconi had received
mysterious signals that he believed
came from the planet Venus. Hesper,
Hesper ... it sounds familiar, somehow.
Wonder if there could be anything
to it?"</p>
<p>Something impelled him to follow
out the instructions in the note. He
spent the next few hours repeating the
address over and over again. When he
was satisfied that he had memorized it
thoroughly, he tore the strange paper
into bits and sent it fluttering earthward
like a tiny snowstorm.</p>
<p>Larner was not a gullible individual,
but neither was he unimaginative. He
was scientist enough to know that
"the impossibilities of to-day are the
accomplishments of to-morrow." So
while not convinced that the note was
a serious communication, still his mind
was open.</p>
<p>The weird address insisted on creeping
into his mind and driving out
other thoughts, even those of his
speckled playfellows, the rainbow
trout.</p>
<p>"I've a notion to change my plans
and go from Denver to the Frying
Pan," he cogitated. Then he thought,
"No, I won't take it that seriously."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">nyone</span> who knows the Colorado
Rockies knows paradise. There
is no more beautiful country on the
globe. Lake County, where Larner
had chosen his fishing grounds, has as
its seat the old mining camp of Leadville.
It has been visited and settled
more for its gold mines than the golden
glow of its sunsets above the clouds,
but the gold of the sunsets is eternal,
while the gold of the mines is fading
quickly away.</p>
<p>Leadville, with its 5,000 inhabitants,
nestles above the clouds, at an altitude
of more than 10,000 feet. Mount Massive
with its three peaks lies back of
the town in panorama and rises to a
height of some 14,400 feet. In the
rugged mountains thereabouts are
hundreds of lakes fed by wild streams
and bubbling crystal springs. All these
lakes are above the clouds.</p>
<p>Winter sees the whole picture decorated
with bizarre snowdrifts from
twenty to forty feet deep, but spring
comes early. The beautiful columbines
and crocuses bloom before the snow
is all off the ground in the valleys.
The lands up to 12,000 feet altitude
are carpeted with a light green grass
and moss. Giant pines and dainty
aspens, with their silvery bark and
pinkish leaves blossom forth and
whisper, while the eternal snows still
linger in the higher rocky cliffs and
peaks above.</p>
<p>Indian-paint blooms its blood red in
contrast to the milder colorings.
Blackbirds and bluebirds chatter and
chipmunks chirp. The gold so hard
to find in the mines glares from the
skies. The hills cuddle in banks of
snowy clouds, and above all a pure
clear blue sky sweeps. The lakes and
streams abound with rainbow trout,
the gamest of any fresh water fish. It
is indeed a paradise for either poet or
sportsman.</p>
<p>In any direction near to Leadville a
man can find Heaven and recreation
and rest.</p>
<p>Finding himself on Harrison Avenue,
the main street of the county
seat, Larner, after renewing some old
acquaintanceships, started west in a
flivver for Tennessee Creek. The<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[50]</SPAN></span>
flivver is a modern adjustment. Until
a few years ago the only means of
traversing these same hills was by
patient, sure-footed donkeys, which
carried the pack while the wayfarer
walked along beside.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> first day's fishing was good.
Trout seemed to greet him
cheerily and sprang eagerly to the
fray. They bit at any sort of silken
fly he cast.</p>
<p>The site chosen by Larner for his
camp was in a mossy clearing separated
from the stream by a fringe of willows
along the creek. Then came a border
of aspens backed by a forest of silver-tipped
firs.</p>
<p>It was ideal and his eyes swept the
scene with satisfaction. Then he began
whittling bacon to grease his pan
for frying trout over the open fire.</p>
<p>Suddenly he heard a rustle in the
aspens, and, looking up, beheld a picture
which made his eyes bulge. A
man and a woman, garbed seemingly
in the costumes of another world,
walked toward him. Neither were
more than five feet tall but were physically
perfect, and marvelously pleasing
to the eye. There was little difference
in their dress.</p>
<p>Both wore helmets studded with
what Larner believed to be sapphires.
He learned later they were diamonds.
Their clothing consisted of tight
trouserlike garments surmounted by
tunics of some white pelt resembling
chamois save for color. A belt studded
with precious stones encircled their
waists. Artistic laced sandals graced
their small firm feet.</p>
<p>Their skin was a pinkish white.
Their every feature was perfection
plus, and their bodies curved just
enough wherever a curve should be.
The woman was daintier and more
fully developed, and her features were
even more finely chiseled than the man.
Otherwise it would have been difficult
to distinguish their sex.</p>
<p>Larner took in these details subconsciously,
for he was awed beyond
expression. All he could do was to
stand seemingly frozen, half bent over
the campfire with his frying pan in his
hand.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> man spoke.</p>
<p>"I hope we did not startle
you," he said. "I thought my note
would partly prepare you for this
meeting. We expected to find you in
the Frying Pan district. When you
did not appear there we tuned our
radio locator to your heart beats and in
that way located you here. It was
hardly a second's space-flying time
from where we were."</p>
<p>Larner said nothing. He could only
stand and gape.</p>
<p>"I do not wonder that you are surprised,"
said the strange little man.
"I will explain that I am Nern Bela,
of the City of Hesper, on the planet
Venus. This is my sister Tula. We
greet you in the interest of the Republic
of Pana, which embraces all of the
planet you know as Venus."</p>
<p>When Larner recovered his breath,
he lost his temper.</p>
<p>"I don't know what circus you escaped
from, but I crave solitude and
I have no time to be bothered with
fairy tales," he said with brutal bruskness.</p>
<p>Expressions of hurt surprise swept
the countenances of his visitors.</p>
<p>The man spoke again:</p>
<p>"We are just what we assert we are,
and our finding you was made necessary
by a condition which grieves the
souls of all the 900,000,000 inhabitants
of Venus. We have come to plead
with you to come with us and use your
scientific knowledge to thwart a
scourge which threatens the lives of
millions of people."</p>
<p>There was a quiet dignity about the
man and an air of pride about the
woman which made Larner stop and
think, or try to. He rubbed his hand
over his brow and looked questioningly
at the pair.</p>
<p>"If you are what you say you are,
how did you get here?" he asked.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[51]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"We came in a targo, a space-flying
ship, capable of doing 426,000 miles an hour.
This is just 1200 times as fast
as 355 miles an hour, the highest speed
known on earth. Come with us and
we will show you our ship." They
looked at him appealingly, and both
smiled a smile of wistful friendliness.</p>
<p>Larner, without a word, threw down
his frying pan and followed them
through the aspens. The brother and
sister walking ahead of him gave his
eyes a treat. He surveyed the perfect
form of the girl. Her perfection was
beyond his ken.</p>
<p>"They certainly are not of this
world," he mused.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">few</span> hundred yards farther on
there was a beach of pebbles,
where the stream had changed its
course. On this plot sat a gigantic
spherical machine of a glasslike material.
It was about 300 feet in
diameter and it was tapered on two
sides into tees which Larner rightly
took to be lights.</p>
<p>"This is a targo, our type of space-flyer,"
said Nern Bela. "It is capable
of making two trips a year between
Venus and the earth. We have visited
this planet often, always landing in
some mountain or jungle fastness as
heretofore we did not desire earth-dwellers
to know of our presence."</p>
<p>"Why not?" asked Larner, his
mouth agape and his eyes protruding.
His mind was so full of questions that
he fairly blurted his first one.</p>
<p>"Because," said Bela, slowly and
frankly, "because our race knows no
sickness and we feared contagion, as
your race has not yet learned to control
its being."</p>
<p>"Oh," said Lamer thoughtfully. He
realized that humans of the earth,
whom he had always regarded as God's
most perfect beings, were not so perfect
after all.</p>
<p>"How do you people control your
being, as you express it?" he asked.</p>
<p>"It is simple," was the reply. "For
ninety centuries we have ceased to
breed imperfection, crime and disease.
We deprived no one of the pleasures
of life, but only the most perfect mental
and physical specimens of our people
cared to have children. In other
words, while we make no claim to controlling
our sex habits, we do control
results."</p>
<p>"Oh," said Larner again.</p>
<p>Nern Bela led the way to a door
which opened into the side of the
space-flyer near its base. "We have
a crew of four men and four women,"
he said. "They handle the entire ship,
with my sister and I in command, making
six souls aboard in all."</p>
<p>"Why men and women?" thought
Larner.</p>
<p>As if in answer to his thought Bela
said:</p>
<p>"On the earth the two sexes have
struggled for sex supremacy. This has
thrown your civilization out of balance.
On Venus we have struggled for sex
equality and have accomplished it.
This is a perfect balance. Man and
women engage in all endeavor and
share all favors and rewards alike."</p>
<p>"In war, too?" asked Larner.</p>
<p>"There has not been war on Venus
for 600,000 years," said Bela. "There
is only the one nation, and the people
all live in perfect accord. Our only
trouble in centuries is a dire peril
which now threatens our people, and
it is of this that I wish to talk to you
more at length."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">hey</span> were standing close to the
targo. Larner was struck by the
peculiar material of which it was constructed.
There was a question in his
eyes, and Nern Bela answered it:</p>
<p>"The metal is duranium; it is
metalized quartz. It is frictionless,
conducts no current or ray except repulsion
and attraction ray NTR69X6
by which it is propelled. It is practically
transparent, lighter than air
and harder than a diamond. It is cast
in moulds after being melted or, rather,
fused.</p>
<p>"We use cold light which we pro<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[52]</SPAN></span>duce
by forcing oxygen through air
tubes into a vat filled with the fat of
a deep sea fish resembling your whale.
You are aware, of course, that that is
exactly how cold light is produced by
the firefly, except for the fact that the
firefly uses his own fat."</p>
<p>Larner was positively fascinated. He
smoothed the metal of the targo in appreciation
of its marvelous construction,
but he longed most to see the
curious light giving mechanism, for
this was closer to his own line of
entomology. He had always believed
that the light giving organs of fireflys
and deep-sea fishes could be reproduced
mechanically.</p>
<p>The interior of the ship resembled
in a vague way that of an ocean liner.
It was controlled by an instrument
board at which a man and a girl sat.
They did not raise their heads as the
three people entered.</p>
<p>When called by Bela and his sister,
who seemed to give commands in
unison, the crew assembled and were
presented to the visitor.</p>
<p>"Earth-dwellers are not the curiosity
to us that we seem to be to you,"
said Tula Bela, speaking for the first
time and smiling sweetly.</p>
<p>Larner was too engrossed to note the
remark further than to nod his head.
He was lost in contemplation of these
strange people, all garbed exactly alike
and all surpassingly lovely to look
upon.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">n</span> odor of food wafted from the
galley, and Larner remembered
he was hungry, with the hunger of
health. He had swung his basket of
fish over his shoulder when he left his
campfire, and Tula took it from him.</p>
<p>"Would you like to have our chef
prepare them for you?" she said, as
she caught his hungry glance at his
day's catch. This time Larner answered
her.</p>
<p>"If you will pardon me," he said
awkwardly. "Really I am famished."</p>
<p>"You will not miss your fish dinner,"
said the girl.</p>
<p>"I believe there is enough for all of
us," said Larner. "I caught twenty
beauties. I never knew fish to bite like
that. Why, they—" and he was off on
a voluminous discourse on a favorite
subject.</p>
<p>Those assembled listened sympathetically.
Then Tula took the fish,
and soon the aroma of broiling trout
mingled with the other entrancing
galley odors.</p>
<p>After a dinner at which some weird
yet satisfying viands were served and
much unusual conversation indulged
in, Nern Bela led the way to what appeared
to be the captain's quarters.
The crew and their visitor sat down
to discuss a subject which proved to
be of such a terrifying nature as to
scar human souls.</p>
<p>"People on Venus," said Nern, as his
eyes took on a worried expression, "are
unable to leave their homes after
nightfall due to some strange nocturnal
beast which attacks them and vampirishly
drains all blood from their veins,
leaving the dead bodies limp and
empty."</p>
<p>"What? How?" questioned Larner
leaning far forward over the conference
table.</p>
<p>The others nodded their heads, and
in the eyes of the women there was
terror. Larner could not but believe
this.</p>
<p>"The beasts, or should I say insects,
are as large as your horses and they
fly, actually fly, by night, striking
down humans, domestic animals and
all creatures of warm blood. How
many there are we have no means of
knowing, and we cannot find their hiding
and breeding places. They are not
native to our planet, and where they
come from we cannot imagine. They
are actually monstrous flys, or bugs,
or some form of insects."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">L</span><span class="upper">arner</span> was overcome by incredulity
and showed it. "Insects
as big as horses?" he questioned
and he could hardly suppress a smile.</p>
<p>"Believe us, in the name of the God<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[53]</SPAN></span>
of us all," insisted Nern. "They have
a mouth which consists of a large suction
disk, in the center of which is a
lancelike tongue. The lance is forced
into the body at any convenient point,
and the suction disk drains out the
blood. If we only knew their source!
They attack young children and the
aged, up to five hundred years, alike."</p>
<p>"What! Five hundred years?" exploded
Larner again.</p>
<p>"I should have explained," said
Nern, simply, "that Venus dwellers,
due to our advanced knowledge of
sanitation and health conversation,
live about 800 years and then die invariably
of old age. The only unnatural
cause of death encountered is
this giant insect. Accidents do occur,
but they are rare. There are no deliberate
killings on Venus."</p>
<p>Larner did not answer. He only
pondered. The more he ran over the
strange happenings of the last week in
his mind the more he believed he was
dreaming. His thoughts took a strange
turn: "Why do these vain people go
around dressed in jeweled ornaments?"</p>
<p>Nern again anticipated a question.
"Diamonds, gold and many of what
you call precious stones are common
on Venus," he volunteered. "Talc and
many other things are more valuable."</p>
<p>"Talc?"</p>
<p>"Yes, we use an immense quantity of
it. We have a wood that is harder than
your steel. We build machinery with
it. We cannot use oil to lubricate these
wooden shafts and bearings as it
softens the wood, so all parts exposed
to friction are sprayed constantly by
a gust of talc from a blower.</p>
<p>"You use talc mostly for toilet purposes.
We use it for various purposes.
There is little left on Venus, and it is
more valuable to us than either gold
or diamonds. We draw on your planet
now for talc. You dump immense
quantities. We just shipped one
hundred 1,000-ton globes of it from the
Cripple Creek district, and the district
never missed it. We drew most of it
from your mine dumps."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">N</span><span class="upper">ern</span> tried not to look bored as
he explained more in detail:
"We brought 100 hollow spheres constructed
of duranium. We suspended
these over the Cripple Creek district
at an altitude of 10,000 feet above the
earth's surface. Because of the crystal
glint of duranium they were invisible
to earth dwellers at that height. Then
we used a suction draft at night, drawing
the talc from the earth, filling one
drum after another. This is done by
tuning in a certain selective attraction
that attracts only talc. It draws it
right out of your ground in tiny particles
and assembles it in the transportation
drums as pure talc. On the
earth, if noticed at all, it would have
been called a dust storm.</p>
<p>"The drums, when loaded with talc,
are set to attract the proper planetary
force and they go speeding toward
Venus at the rate of 426,000 miles an
hour. They are prevented from colliding
with meteors by an automatic
magnetic device. This is controlled by
magnetic force alone, and when the
targo gets too close to a meteor it
changes its course instantly. The
passenger targo we ride in acts
similarly. And now may I return to
the subject of the vampires of
Venus?"</p>
<p>"Pardon my ignorance," said Larner,
and for the first time in his life he
felt very ignorant indeed.</p>
<p>"I know little more than I have told
you," said Nern, rather hopelessly.
"Our knowledge of your world, your
people and your language comes from
our listening in on you and observing
you without being observed or heard.
This might seem like taking an advantage
of you, were it not for the fact
that we respect confidences, and subjugate
all else to science. We have
helped you at times, by telepathically
suggesting ideas to your thinkers.</p>
<p>"We would have given you all our
inventions in this way, gladly, but in
many instances we were unable to find
minds attuned to accept such advanced
ideas. We have had the advantage of<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[54]</SPAN></span>
you because our planet is so many millions
of years older than your own."
There was a plaintive note in Nern's
voice as he talked.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">B</span><span class="upper">ut</span> now we are on our knees to
you, so to speak. We do not
know everything and, desperately, we
need the aid of a man of your caliber.
In behalf of the distraught people of
Venus, I am asking you bluntly to
make a great sacrifice. Will you face
the dangers of a trip to Venus and use
your knowledge to aid us in exterminating
these creatures of hell?"
There was positive pleading in his
voice, and in the eyes of his beautiful
sister there were tears.</p>
<p>"But what would my superiors in the
Government Bureau think?" feebly
protested Larner, "I could not explain...."</p>
<p>"You have no superiors in your line.
Our Government needs you at this
time more than any earthly government.
Your place here is a fixture. You
can always return to it, should you
live. We are asking you to face a horrible
death with us. You can name
your own compensation, but I know
you are not interested so much in reward.</p>
<p>"Now, honestly, my good professor,
there is no advantage to be gained by
explanation. Just disappear. In the
name of God and in the interests of
science and the salvation of a people
who are at your mercy, just drop out
of sight. Drop out of life on this
planet. Come with us. The cause is
worthy of the man I believe you to
be."</p>
<p>"I will go," said Larner, and his hosts
waited for no more. An instant later
the targo shot out into interstellar
space.</p>
<p>"How do you know what course to
follow?" asked Larner after a reasonable
time, when he had recovered from
his surprise at the sudden take-off.</p>
<p>"We do not need to know. Our machine
is tuned to be attracted by the
planetary force of Venus alone. We
could not go elsewhere. A repulsion
ray finds us as we near Venus and protects
us against too violent a landing.
We will land on Venus like a feather
about three months from to-night."</p>
<p>The time of the journey through
outer space was of little moment save
for one incident. Larner and the other
travelers were suddenly and rather
rudely jostled about the rapidly flying
craft.</p>
<p>Larner lost his breath but not his
speech. "What happened?" he inquired.</p>
<p>"We just automatically dodged a
meteor," explained Nern.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">M</span><span class="upper">ost</span> of the time of the trip was
spent by Larner in listening to
explanations of customs and traditions
of the people of the brightest planet
in the universe.</p>
<p>There was a question Larner had desired
to ask Nern Bela, yet he hesitated
to do so. Finally one evening
during the journey to Venus, when the
travelers had been occupying themselves
in a scientific discussion of comparative
evolution on the two planets,
Larner saw his opportunity.</p>
<p>"Why," he asked rather hesitatingly,
"did the people of Venus always remain
so small? Why did you not
strive more for height? The Japanese,
who are the shortest in stature of
earth people, always wanted to be tall."</p>
<p>"Without meaning any offense," replied
Nern, "I must say that it is characteristic
of earth dwellers to want
something without knowing any good
reason why they want it. It is perfectly
all right for you people to be
tall, but for us it is not so fitting. You
see, Venus is smaller than the earth.
Size is comparative. You think we are
not tall because you are used to taller
people. Comparatively we are tall
enough. In proportion to the size of
our planet we are exactly the right
size. We keep our population at 900,000,000,
and that is the perfectly exact
number of people who can live comfortably
on our planet."<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[55]</SPAN></span></p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">rriving</span> on Venus, Larner was
assigned a laboratory and office
in one of the Government buildings. It
was a world seemingly made of glass.
Quartz, of rose, white and crystal
coloring, Larner found, was the commonest
country rock of the planet. In
many cases it was shot full of splinters
of gold which the natives had not
taken the trouble to recover. This
quartz was of a terrific hardness and
was used in building, paving, and public
works generally. The effect was
bewildering. It was a world of shimmering
crystal.</p>
<p>The atmosphere of Venus had long
puzzled Larner. While not an astronomer
in the largest sense of the
word, yet he had a keen interest in the
heavens as a giant puzzle picture, and
he had given some spare time to the
study.</p>
<p>He knew that from all indications
Venus had a most unusual atmosphere.
He had read that the atmosphere was
considerably denser than that of the
earth, and that its presence made observation
difficult. The actual surface
of the planet he knew could hardly
be seen due, either to this atmosphere,
or seemingly perpetual cloud banks.</p>
<p>He had read that the presence of
atmosphere surrounding Venus is indicated
to earthly astronomers, during
the planet's transit, by rings of light
due to the reflection and scattering
of collected sunlight by its atmosphere.</p>
<p>Astronomers on earth, he knew, had
long been satisfied of the presence of
great cloud banks, as rocks and soils
could not have such high reflecting
power. He knew that like the moon,
Venus, when viewed from the earth,
presents different phases from the
crescent to the full or total stage.</p>
<p>Looking up at the sky from the
quartz streets of Venus, Larner beheld,
in sweeping grandeur, massed cloud banks,
many of them apparently rain
clouds.</p>
<p>Nern noted his skyward gaze, and
said:</p>
<p>"We have accomplished meteorological
control. Those clouds were brought
under control when we conquered interplanetary
force, and what you call
gravity. We form them and move
them at will. They are our rain factory.
We make rain when and where
we will. This insures our crops and
makes for health and contentment.</p>
<p>"The air, you will note, is about the
same or a little more moist than the
earth air at sea level. This is due to
the planet's position nearer the sun.</p>
<p>"We have been striving for centuries
to make the air a little drier and more
rare, but we have not succeeded yet.
The heavy content of disintegrated
quartz in our soil makes moisture very
necessary for our crops, so our moist
atmosphere is evidently a provision of
providence. We are used to breathing
this moist air, and when I first visited
the earth I was made uncomfortable by
your rarified atmosphere. Now I can
adjust myself to breathing the air of
either planet. However, I find myself
drinking a great deal more water on
earth than on Venus."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">n</span> this fairyland which had enjoyed
centuries of peace, health and accord,
stark terror now reigned. In
some instances the finely-bred, marvellously
intelligent people were in a
mental condition bordering on madness.</p>
<p>This was especially true in the farming
districts, where whole herds of lats
had been wiped out. Lats, Larner
gleaned, were a common farm animal
similar to the bovine species on earth,
only more wooly. On these creatures
the Venus dwellers depended for their
milk and dairy supplies, and for their
warmer clothing, which was made from
the skin. The hair was used for
brushes, in the building trades, and a
thousand ways in manufacturing.</p>
<p>Besides the domestic animals hundreds
of people continued to meet
death, and only a few of the flying
vampires had been hunted down. The
giant insects were believed to breed<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</SPAN></span>
slowly as compared to earth insects,
their females producing not more than
ten eggs, by estimate, after which
death overtook the adult. In spite of
this they were reported to be increasing.</p>
<p>In the Government building Larner
was placed in touch with all the Government
scientists of Venus. His
nearest collaborator was one Zorn
Zada, most profound scientist of the
planet. The two men, with a score of
assistants, worked elbow to elbow on
the most gigantic scientific mystery in
the history of two planets.</p>
<p>A specimen of the dread invader was
mounted and studied by the scientists,
who were so engrossed in their work
that they hardly took time to eat. As
for sleep, there was little of it. Days
were spent in research and nights in
hunting the monsters. This hunting
was done by newly recruited soldiers
and scientists. The weapons used were
a short ray-gun of high destructive
power which disintegrated the bodies
of the enemies by atomic energy blasts.
The quarry was wary, however, and
struck at isolated individuals rather
than massed fighting lines.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">eated</span> at his work-bench Larner
asked Zorn Zada what had become
of Nern Bela. In his heart he had a
horrible lurking fear that the beautiful
Tula Bela might fall before a swarm
of the strange vampires, but he did not
voice this anxiety.</p>
<p>"Nern and his sister are explorers
and navigators," was the reply. "They
have been assigned to carry you anywhere
on this or any other planet
where your work may engage you.
They await your orders. They are too
valuable as space-navigators to be
placed in harm's way."</p>
<p>Breathing a sigh of relief, Larner
bent to his labors.</p>
<p>"What other wild animals or harmful
insects have you on this planet?" he
asked Zorn.</p>
<p>"I get your thought," replied the first
scientist of Venus. "You are seeking
a natural enemy to this deadly flying
menace, are you not?"</p>
<p>"Yes," admitted Larner.</p>
<p>"All insects left on Venus with this
one exception are beneficial," said
Zorn. "There are no wild animals, and
no harmful insects. All animals, insects
and birds have been domesticated
and are fed by their keepers. We get
fabrics from forms of what you call
spiders and other web-builders and cocoon
spinners. All forms of birds,
beasts and crawling and flying things
have been brought under the dominion
of man. We will have to seek another
way out than by finding an enemy parasite."</p>
<p>"Where do you think these insect invaders
came from?" asked Larner.</p>
<p>"You have noticed they are unlike
anything you have on earth in anatomical
construction," said the savant.
"They partake of the general features
of Coleoptera (beetles), in that they
wear a sheath of armor, yet their mouth
parts are more on the order of the Diptera
(flys). I regard them more as a fly
than a beetle, because most Coleoptera
are helpful to humanity while practically
all, if not all, Diptera are malignant.</p>
<p>"As to their original habitat, I believe
they migrated here from some other
planet."</p>
<p>"They could not fly through space,"
said Larner.</p>
<p>"No, that is the mystery of it," agreed
Zorn. "How they got here and where
they breed are the questions that we
have to answer."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">L</span><span class="upper">ong</span> days passed on Venus. Long
days and sleepless nights. The
big insects were hunted nightly by men
armed with ray-guns, and nightly the
blood-sucking monsters took their toll
of humanity and animals.</p>
<p>Finally Larner and Zorn determined
to capture one of the insects alive,
muzzle its lance and suction pad, and
give it sufficient freedom to find its way
back to its hiding place. By following
the shackled monster the scientists<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[57]</SPAN></span>
hoped to find the breeding grounds.</p>
<p>All the provinces of the planet joined
in the drive. Men turned out in automatic
vehicles, propelled by energy
gathered from the atmosphere. They
came on foot and in aircraft. Mobilization
was at given points and, leading
the van, were Zorn and Larner and
their confreres in the targo of Nern
and Tula Bela. The great army of Venus
carried giant searchlights and was
armed with deadly ray-guns.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">eadquarters</span> of the vast
Army of Offense was in the targo
of the Belas. Larner was in supreme
command. Just before the big army set
out to scour the planet to seek the
breeding place of the monsters Larner
issued a bulletin that set all Venus by
the ears.</p>
<p>Addressed to President Vole Vesta
of the Republic of Pana and the good
people of Venus, it read:</p>
<div class="blockquote"><p>As is generally known, it has
been the habit of the nation's
space-flying merchantmen to visit
the sunlit side of the planet Mercury
to obtain certain rare woods
and other materials not found on
this planet.</p>
<p>One side of Mercury, as is
known, is always turned from the
sun and is in a condition of perpetual
night. In this perpetual
darkness and dampness, where
many rivers flow into warm black
swamps, the vampires have bred for
centuries. Conditions were ideal
for their growth, and so through
the ages they evolved into the
monsters we have encountered
lately on Venus.</p>
<p>During some comparatively recent
visit to Mercury the grubs of
these insects have found their way
abroad a vegetation-laden targo left
standing near the edge of the black
swamps of Mercury. These grubs
were thus transported to Venus
and underwent their natural metamorphosis
here. Reaching adult
stage, they have found some place
to hide and breed, and thus is explained
the origin of the vampires
of Venus.</p>
</div>
<p>This was widely read and discussed
and was finally accepted as the means
of the invasion of peaceful, beautiful
Venus by a horror that might well have
originated in hell.</p>
<p>However, this did not reveal the
breeding grounds, or remove the nation-wide
scourge of the horrible
winged vampires, so the mobilization of
all the forces of the planet continued.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">s</span> day followed day the hordes of
fighting Venus dwellers grew in
the concentration camps. In the targo
of the Belas, Larner, brain-weary and
body-racked as he was with overwork,
found a grain of happiness in being in
the presence of Nern and his beautiful,
petite sister.</p>
<p>With Zorn, Larner was supervising
the construction of a big net of strongly
woven wire mesh, in which it was
hoped to catch one of the vampires. It
was decided to bait the trap with a fat
female lat.</p>
<p>Zorn, Larner and the Belas fared
forth from the concentration camp followed
by a company of soldiers carrying
the big net. Tula with her own
hand led the fat lat heifer. His eyes
were filled with commiseration for the
poor animal.</p>
<p>Thousands of soldiers and citizenry,
in fighting array, watched the departure
of the little group.</p>
<p>In a glade the trap was set and the
net arranged to fall over the monster
once it attacked the calf. From a
thicket, in utter darkness, Zorn and
Larner and the two Belas waited for
the possible catch. The whole nation
stood awaiting the order to advance.</p>
<p>On the fourth night the vigil was rewarded
in a manner frightful to relate.</p>
<p>A clumsy flutter of giant wings broke
the stillness.</p>
<p>The four waiting forms in the thicket
rejoiced, believing the fat lat was about
to be attacked.</p>
<p>Onward came the approaching hor<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</SPAN></span>ror.
The measured flap, flap of its
armored wings drawing nearer and
nearer. Then, horror—horrors!</p>
<p>A feminine scream rent the air. Cries
loud and shrill arose above a hysterical
feminine cry for help.</p>
<p>The monster had chosen Tula Bela
for its prey!</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">Z</span><span class="upper">orn</span> exploded an alarm bomb. A
compressed air siren brought the
army forward on the run. Giant floodlights
began to light up the scene. The
blood of Larner and Nern froze.</p>
<p>The monster had borne the girl to the
ground. Its frightful lance and cupper
was upraised to strike. Larner was the
nearest and the quickest to act. He
grabbed for his ray-gun, swung at his
belt. It was gone! In horror he remembered
he had left it at the base.
He seized a short knife and threw himself
forward, rolling his body between
that of the girl and the descending
lance and cupper.</p>
<p>As the lance pierced his shoulder
Larner, in one wild gesture of frenzy,
drove his knife through the soft, yielding
flesh of the vampire's organ of suction.</p>
<p>Protected by no bony structure the
snout of the monster was amputated.</p>
<p>The terrible creature had been disarmed
of his most formidable weapon,
but he continued to fight. Larner felt
the spikes on the monster's legs tear at
his flesh.</p>
<p>"Don't kill the thing," he shouted.
"Bring on the net. For the love of God
bring on the net!" Then he lost consciousness.</p>
<p>It was daylight when Larner, somewhat
weakened from loss of blood, regained
consciousness.</p>
<p>The beautiful Tula Bela was leaning
over him.</p>
<p>She whispered comforting words to
him in a language he did not fully
understand. She whispered happy exclamations
in words he did not know
the meaning of, but the tone was unmistakably
those of a sweetheart
towards her lover.</p>
<p>Finally, in answer to a true scientist's
question in his eyes, she said in
English:</p>
<p>"They caught the thing alive. They
await your order to advance."</p>
<p>"Let us be on our way," said Larner,
and he started to arise.</p>
<p>"You are hardly strong enough," said
Tula.</p>
<p>"Believe me, I am all right," insisted
Larner, and after several trials he got
to his feet. His constitution was naturally
strong and his will was stronger,
so he fought back all feelings of weakness
and soon announced himself ready
to go ahead with the project at hand.
For speed was all important, and the
young professor found himself unable
to remain inactive.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> rejoiced when Zorn told him
that the big insect that had attacked
Tula Bela had been captured
alive and had been kept well nourished
by lat's blood injected into its stomach.</p>
<p>With Zorn Larner went to inspect
the hideous monstrosity and found it
in leash and straining. It was ready
to be used to lead the way back to its
breeding place.</p>
<p>Its wings shackled, the lumbering
insect floundered on its way straight
north. Ponderously and half blindly
it crawled as the searchlights' glare
was kept far enough in advance to keep
from blinding the monster.</p>
<p>True to instinct it finally brought up
at early dawn under a high cliff of
smoky quartz. Here, in the great
crevices, the drove of diabolical vampires
were hiding.</p>
<p>As the light struck their dens, they
attempted clumsily to take wing, but a
interlacing network of devastating disintegrating
rays from the ray-guns
shattered their bodies to dust, which
was borne away by the wind.</p>
<p>The next few months were spent in
combing the quartz crags of Venus for
similar infested areas, but only the one
breeding nest was found. The scourge
had been conquered in its first and only
stronghold.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[59]</SPAN></span></p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">o</span> ended the greatest reign of terror
in the history of Venus.</p>
<p>Leslie Larner was given a vote of
thanks, and riches were showered upon
him by the good people of the sky's
brightest star.</p>
<p>His modesty was characteristic, and
he insisted that his part in saving humanity
on the planet had been small.</p>
<p>Passage back to earth was offered
him, but Nern and Tula Bela urged
him to say and live his life on Venus.
This he finally agreed to do.</p>
<p>"If I returned," he said, "I would
always be tempted to tell my experiences
while away, and there is not a
jury in the world which would account
me sane after I had once spoken."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">hat</span> the story of Larner's adventure
reached earth dwellers at all
is due to the fact that Nern Bela on a
subsequent visit to the earth narrated
it to a Colorado quartz miner. This
miner, a bronzed and bearded prospector
for gold, stumbled on the targo in
a mountain fastness, and there was
nought to do but make him welcome
and pledge him to secrecy.</p>
<p>The miner surveyed the crystal targo
in rapt wonderment and said: "And to
think I am the only earth man who
ever viewed such a craft!"</p>
<p>"No," answered Nern Bela, "there is
one other." And then the stirring story
of Leslie Larner's life on Venus was
told.</p>
<hr style="width: 9%; margin-top: 4em; margin-bottom: 4em;" />
<h2 class="chapter">SAFE FLYING IN FOGS</h2>
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> outstanding development in aviation
recently, and one of the most significant
so far in aviation history was the "blind"
flight of Lieut. James H. Doolittle, daredevil
of the Army Air Corps, at Mitchel Field,
L. I., which led Harry P. Guggenheim, President
of the Daniel Guggenheim Fund for the
Promotion of Aeronautics, Inc. to announce
that the problem of fog-flying, one of aviation's
greatest bugbears, had been solved at
last.</p>
<p>There has been "blind flying" done in the
past but never before in the history of aviation
has any pilot taken off, circled, crossed,
re-crossed the field, then landed only a short
distance away from his starting point while
flying under conditions resembling the densest
fog, as Lieut. "Jimmy" Doolittle has done, in
his Wright-motored "Husky" training-plane.
It was something uncanny to contemplate.</p>
<p>The "dense fog" was produced artificially
by the simple device of making the cabin of
the plane entirely light-proof. Once seated
inside, the flyer, with his co-pilot, Lieut.
Benjamin Kelsey, also of Mitchel Field, were
completely shut off from any view of the
world outside. All they had to depend on
were three new flying instruments, developed
during the past year in experiments conducted
over the full-flight laboratory established by
the Fund at Mitchel Field.</p>
<p>The chief factors contributing to the solution
of the problem of blind flying consist of
a new application of the visual radio beacon,
the development of an improved instrument
for indicating the longitudinal and lateral position
of an airplane, a new directional gyroscope,
and a sensitive barometric altimeter,
so delicate as to measure the altitude of an
airplane within a few feet of the ground.</p>
<p>Thus, instead of relying on the natural horizon
for stability, Lieut. Doolittle uses an
"artificial horizon" on the small instrument
which indicates longitudinal and lateral position
in relation to the ground at all time.
He was able to locate the landing field by
means of the direction-finding long-distance
radio beacon. In addition, another smaller
radio beacon had been installed, casting a
beam fifteen to twenty miles in either direction,
which governs the immediate approach
to the field.</p>
<p>To locate the landing field the pilot watches
two vibrating reeds, tuned to the radio beacon,
on a virtual radio receiver on his instrument
board. If he turns to the right or left
of his course the right or left reed, respectively,
begins doing a sort of St. Vitus
dance. If the reeds are in equilibrium the
pilot knows it is clear sailing straight to his
field.</p>
<p>The sensitive altimeter showed Lieut. Doolittle
his altitude and made it possible for him
to calculate his landing to a distance of within
a few feet from the ground.</p>
<p>Probably the strangest device of all that
Lieut. Doolittle has been called upon to test
in Mr. Guggenheim's war against fog is a
sort of heat cannon that goes forth to combat
like a fire-breathing dragon of old. Like the
enemies of the dragon, the fog is supposed to
curl up and die before the scorching breath
of the "hot air artillery" although the fundamental
principle behind the device is a great
deal more scientific than such an explanation
sounds. It is, in brief, based on the known
fact that fog forms only in a very narrow
temperature zone which lies between the
saturation and precipitation points of the atmosphere.
If the air grows a little colder the
fog turns into rain and falls; if it is warmed
very slightly the mist disappears and the air
is once more normally clear, although its
humidity is very close to the maximum.</p>
<hr />
<div class="image">
<ANTIMG src="images/i060.jpg" width-obs="596" height-obs="532" alt="" title="" /></div>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>I turned back to look at the Planetara.</i></h3>
<h2 class="chapter3"><SPAN name="Brigands_of_the_Moon" id="Brigands_of_the_Moon"></SPAN>Brigands of the Moon<br/> <small>(The Book of Gregg Haljan)</small><br/> <small>PART TWO OF A FOUR-PART NOVEL</small></h2>
<h2 class="chapter"><i>By Ray Cummings</i></h2>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="sidenote">Out of awful space tumbled the Space-ship
<i>Planetara</i> towards the Moon, her officers
<i>dead</i>, with bandits at her helm—and the
controls out of order!</div>
<p><span class="dropcap">M</span><span class="upper">y</span> name, Gregg Haljan. My age,
twenty-five years. My occupation,
at the time my narrative begins,
in 2075, was third officer of the Interplanetary
Space-ship <i>Planetara</i>.</p>
<p>Thus I introduce<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[60]</SPAN></span>
myself to
you. For this is
a continuation of
the book of Gregg
Haljan, and of necessity
I am the
chief actor therein. I shall recapitulate
very briefly what has happened so
far:</p>
<p>Unscrupulous Martian brigands were
scheming for Johnny Grantline's secret
radium-ore treasure, dug out of the
Moon and waiting there to be picked
up by the <i>Planetara</i> on her return trip
from Mars.</p>
<p>The <i>Planetara</i> left, bound for Mars,
some ten days
away. Suspicious
interplanetary
passengers were
aboard: Miko and
Moa, a brother
and a sister of
Mars; Sir Arthur Coniston, a mysterious
Englishman; Ob Hahn, a Venus
mystic. And small, effeminate George
Prince and his sister, Anita. Love, I
think, was born instantly between Anita<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[61]</SPAN></span>
and me. I found all too soon that Miko,
the sinister giant from Mars, also desired
her.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="image">
<ANTIMG src="images/i061.jpg" width-obs="588" height-obs="594" alt="" title="" /></div>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<p>As we neared the Moon we received
Grantline's secret message: "Stop for
ore on your return voyage. Success
beyond wildest hopes!" But I soon
discovered that an eavesdropper in an
invisible cloak had overheard it!</p>
<p>Soon afterwards Miko accidentally
murdered a person identified as Anita
Prince.</p>
<p>Then, in the confusion that resulted,
Miko struck his great blow. The crew
of the <i>Planetara</i>, secretly in his pay,
rose up and killed the captain and all
the officers but Snap Dean, the radio-helio
operator, and myself.</p>
<p>I was besieged in the chart-room.
George Prince leaped in upon me—and
put his arms around me. I looked at
him closer—only to discover it was
Anita, disguised as her brother! It
was her brother, George, who had been
killed! George had been in the brigands'
confidence—thus Anita was able
to spy for us.</p>
<p>Quickly we plotted. I would surrender
to her, Anita Prince, whom the
brigands thought was George Prince.
Together we might possibly be able,
with Snap's help, to turn the tide, and
reclaim the <i>Planetara</i>.</p>
<p>I was taken to my stateroom and
locked there until Miko the brigand
leader should come to dispose of me.
But I cared not what had happened—Anita
was alive!<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[62]</SPAN></span></p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER XIV</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>The Brigand Leader</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> giant Miko stood confronting
me. He slid my cubby door
closed behind him. He stood
with his head towering close
against my ceiling. His cloak was discarded.
In his leather clothes, and
with his clanking sword-ornament, his
aspect carried the swagger of a brigand
of old. He was bareheaded; the
light from one of my tubes fell upon his
grinning, leering gray face.</p>
<p>"So, Gregg Haljan? You have come
to your senses at last. You do not wish
me to write my name upon your chest?
I would not have done that to Dean;
he forced me. Sit back."</p>
<p>I had been on my bunk. I sank back
at the gesture of his huge hairy arm.
His forearm was bare now; the sear
of a burn on it was plain to be seen.
He remarked my gaze.</p>
<p>"True. You did that, Haljan, in
Great-New York. But I bear you no
malice. I want to talk to you now."</p>
<p>He cast about for a seat, and took the
little stool which stood by my desk.
His hand held a small cylinder of the
Martian paralyzing ray; he rested it
beside him on the desk.</p>
<p>"Now we can talk."</p>
<p>I remained silent. Alert. Yet my
thoughts were whirling. Anita was
alive. Masquerading now as her brother.
And, with the joy of it, came a shudder.
Above everything, Miko must not
know.</p>
<p>"A great adventure we are upon,
Haljan."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">M</span><span class="upper">y</span> thoughts came back. Miko was
talking with an assumption of
friendly comradeship. "All is well—and
we need you, as I have said before.
I am no fool. I have been aware of
everything that went on aboard this
ship. You, of all the officers, are most
clever at the routine mathematics. Is
that so?"</p>
<p>"Perhaps," I said.</p>
<p>"You are modest." He fumbled at a
pocket of his jacket, produced a scroll-sheaf.
I recognized it: Blackstone's
figures; the calculation Blackstone
roughly made of the elements of the
asteroid we had passed.</p>
<p>"I am interested in these," Miko
went on. "I want you to verify them.
And this." He held up another scroll.
"This is the calculation of our present
position. And our course. Hahn claims
he is a navigator. We have set the
ship's gravity plates—see, like this—"</p>
<p>He handed me the scrolls; he watched
me keenly as I glanced over them.</p>
<p>"Well?" I said.</p>
<p>"You are sparing of words, Haljan.
By the devils of the airways, I could
make you talk! But I want to be
friendly."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">handed</span> him back the scrolls. I
stood up; I was almost within
reach of his weapon, but with a sweep
of his great arm he abruptly knocked
me back to my bunk.</p>
<p>"You dare?" Then he smiled. "Let
us not come to blows!"</p>
<p>"No," I said. I returned his smile.
In truth, physical violence could get me
nothing in dealing with this fellow. I
would have to try guile. And I saw now
that his face was flushed and his eyes
unnaturally bright. He had been drinking
alcolite; not enough to befuddle
him—but enough to make him triumphantly
talkative.</p>
<p>"Hahn may not be much of a mathematician,"
I suggested. "But there is
your Sir Arthur Coniston." I managed
a sarcastic grin. "Is that his name?"</p>
<p>"Almost. Haljan, will you verify
these figures?"</p>
<p>"Yes. But why? Where are we going?"</p>
<p>He laughed. "You are afraid I will
not tell you! Why should I not? This
great adventure of mine is progressing
perfectly. A tremendous stake, Haljan.
A hundred millions of dollars in gold-leaf;
there will be fabulous riches for
us all, when that radium ore is sold
for a hundred million in gold-leaf."</p>
<p>"But where are we going?"<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[63]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"To that asteroid," he said abruptly.
"I must get rid of these passengers.
I am no murderer."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">W</span><span class="upper">ith</span> half a dozen killings in
the recent fight this was hardly
convincing. But he was obviously
wholly serious. He seemed to read my
thoughts.</p>
<p>"I kill only when necessary. We will
land upon the asteroid. A perfect place
to maroon the passengers. Is it not
so? I will give them the necessities of
life. They will be able to signal. And
in a month or so, when we are safely
finished with our adventure, a police
ship no doubt will rescue them."</p>
<p>"And then, from the asteroid," I suggested,
"we are going—"</p>
<p>"To the Moon, Haljan. What a clever
guesser you are! Coniston and Hahn
are calculating our course. But I have
no great confidence in them. And so
I want you."</p>
<p>"You have me."</p>
<p>"Yes. I have you. I would have
killed you long ago—I am an impulsive
fellow—but my sister restrained me."</p>
<p>He gazed at me slyly. "Moa seems
strangely to like you, Haljan."</p>
<p>"Thanks," I said. "I'm flattered."</p>
<p>"She still hopes I may really win you
to join us," he went on. "Gold-leaf is a
wonderful thing; there would be plenty
for you in this affair. And to be rich,
and have the love of a woman like
Moa...."</p>
<p>He paused. I was trying cautiously
to gauge him, to get from him all the
information I could. I said, with another
smile, "That is premature, to talk
of Moa. I will help you chart your
course. But this venture, as you call
it, is dangerous. A police-ship—"</p>
<p>"There are not many," he declared.
"The chances of us encountering one
is very slim." He grinned at me. "You
know that as well as I do. And we now
have those code pass-words—I forced
Dean to tell me where he had hidden
them. If we should be challenged, our
pass-word answer will relieve suspicion."</p>
<p>"The <i>Planetara</i>," I objected, "being
overdue at Ferrok-Shahn, will cause
alarm. You'll have a covey of patrol-ships
after you."</p>
<p>"That will be two weeks from now,"
he smiled. "I have a ship of my own
in Ferrok-Shahn. It lies there waiting
now, manned and armed. I am hoping
that, with Dean's help, we may be able
to flash it a signal. It will join us on
the Moon. Fear not for the danger,
Haljan. I have great interests allied
with me in this thing. Plenty of money.
We have planned carefully."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> was idly fingering his cylinder;
his gaze roved me as I sat docile
on my bunk. "Did you think George
Prince was a leader of this? A mere
boy. I engaged him a year ago—his
knowledge of ores is valuable."</p>
<p>My heart was pounding, but I strove
not to show it. He went on calmly.</p>
<p>"I told you I am impulsive. Half a
dozen times I have nearly killed George
Prince, and he knows it." He frowned.
"I wish I had killed him, instead of his
sister. That was an error."</p>
<p>There was a note of real concern in
his voice. Did he love Anita Prince?
It seemed so.</p>
<p>He added, "That is done—nothing
can change it. George Prince is helpful
to me. Your friend Dean is another.
I had trouble with him, but he is docile
now."</p>
<p>I said abruptly, "I don't know whether
your promise means anything or not,
Miko. But George Prince said you
would use no more torture."</p>
<p>"I won't. Not if you and Dean obey
me."</p>
<p>"You tell Dean I have agreed to that.
You say he gave you the code-words
we took from Johnson?"</p>
<p>"Yes. There was a fool! That Johnson!
You blame me, Haljan, for the
killing of Captain Carter? You need
not. Johnson offered to try and capture
you. Take you alive. He killed
Carter because he was angry at him.
A stupid, vengeful fool! He is dead,
and I am glad of it."<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[64]</SPAN></span></p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">M</span><span class="upper">y</span> mind was on Miko's plans. I
ventured. "This treasure on the
Moon—did you say it was on the
Moon?"</p>
<p>"Don't be an idiot," he retorted. "I
know as much about Grantline as you
do."</p>
<p>"That's very little."</p>
<p>"Perhaps."</p>
<p>"Perhaps you know more, Miko. The
Moon is a big place. Where, for instance,
is Grantline located?"</p>
<p>I held my breath. Would he tell me
that? A score of questions—vague
plans—were in my mind. How skilled
at mathematics were these brigands?
Miko, Hahn, Coniston—could I fool
them? If I could learn Grantline's location
on the Moon, and keep the <i>Planetara</i>
away from it. A pretended error
of charting. Time lost—and perhaps
Snap could find an opportunity to signal
Earth, get help.</p>
<p>Miko answered my question as bluntly
as I asked it. "I don't know where
Grantline is located. But we will find
out. He will not suspect the <i>Planetara</i>.
When we get close to the Moon, we
will signal and ask him. We can trick
him into telling us. You think I do
not know what is on your mind, Haljan?
There is a secret code of signals
arranged between Dean and Grantline.
I have forced Dean to confess it. Without
torture! Prince helped me in that.
He persuaded Dean not to defy me. A
very persuasive fellow, George Prince.
More diplomatic than I am, I give him
credit."</p>
<p>I strove to hold my voice calm. "If
I should join you, Miko—my word, if
I ever gave it, you would find dependable—I
would say George Prince is
very valuable to us. You should rein
your temper. He is half your size—you
might some time, without intention
do him injury."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> laughed. "Moa says so. But
have no fear—"</p>
<p>"I was thinking," I persisted, "I'd
like to have a talk with George Prince."</p>
<p>Ah, my pounding, tumultuous heart!
But I was smiling calmly. And I tried
to put into my voice a shrewd note of
cupidity. "I really know very little
about this treasure, Miko. If there
were a million or two of gold-leaf in
it for me—"</p>
<p>"Perhaps there would be."</p>
<p>"I was thinking. Suppose you let me
have a talk with Prince? I have some
knowledge of radium ores. His skill
and mine—a calculation of what
Grantline's treasure may really be. You
don't know; you are only assuming."</p>
<p>I paused. Whatever may have been
in Miko's mind I cannot say. But
abruptly he stood up. I had left my
bunk, but he waved me back.</p>
<p>"Sit down. I am not like Moa. I
would not trust you just because you
protested you would be loyal." He
picked up his cylinder. "We will talk
again." He gestured to the scrolls he
had left upon my desk. "Work on
those. I will judge you by the results."</p>
<p>He was no fool, this brigand leader.</p>
<p>"Yes," I agreed. "You want a true
course now to the asteroid?"</p>
<p>"Yes. I will get rid of these passengers.
Then we will plan further. Do
your best, Haljan—no error! By the
Gods, I warn you I can check up on
you!"</p>
<p>I said meekly, "Very well. But you
ask Prince if he wants my calculations
of Grantline's ore-body."</p>
<p>I shot Miko a foxy look as he stood
by my door. I added, "You think you
are clever. There is plenty you don't
know. Our first night out from the
Earth—Grantline's signals—didn't it
ever occur to you that I might have
some figures on his treasure?"</p>
<p>It startled him. "Where are they?"</p>
<p>I tapped my forehead. "You don't
suppose I was foolish enough to record
them. You ask Prince if he wants to
talk to me. A high thorium content in
ore—you ask Prince. A hundred millions,
or two hundred. It would make
a big difference, Miko."</p>
<p>"I will think about it." He backed
out and sealed the door upon me once
again.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[65]</SPAN></span></p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">B</span><span class="upper">ut</span> Anita did not come. I verified
Hahn's figures, which were
very nearly correct. I charted a course
for the asteroid; it was almost the one
which had been set.</p>
<p>Coniston came for my results. "I
say, we are not so bad as navigators,
are we? I think we're jolly good, considering
our inexperience. Not bad at
all, eh?"</p>
<p>"No."</p>
<p>I did not think it wise to ask him
about Prince.</p>
<p>"Are you hungry, Haljan?" he demanded.</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<p>A steward came with a meal. The
saturnine Hahn stood at my door with
a weapon upon me while I ate. They
were taking no chances—and they were
wise not to.</p>
<p>The day passed. Day and night, all
the same of aspect here in the starry
vault of Space. But with the ship's
routine it was day.</p>
<p>And then another time of sleep. I
slept, fitfully, worrying, trying to plan.
Within a few hours we would be nearing
the asteroid.</p>
<p>The time of sleep was nearly passed.
My chronometer marked five A. M. of
our original Earth starting time. The
seal of my cubby door hissed. The
door slowly, opened.</p>
<p>Anita!</p>
<p>She stood there with her cloak
around her. A distance away on the
shadowed deck-space Coniston was
loitering.</p>
<p>"Anita!" I whispered it.</p>
<p>"Gregg, dear!"</p>
<p>She turned and gestured to the
watching brigand. "I will not be long,
Coniston."</p>
<p>She came in and half closed the door
upon us, leaving it open enough so that
we could make sure that Coniston did
not advance.</p>
<p>I stepped back where he could not
see us.</p>
<p>"Anita!"</p>
<p>She flung herself into my opened
arms.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER XV</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>The Masquerader</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">moment</span> when beyond all
thought of the nearby brigand—or
the possibility of an eavesdropping
ray trained now upon my little cubby—a
moment while Anita and I held
each other; and whispered those things
which could mean nothing to the
world, but which were all the world to
us.</p>
<p>Then it was she whose wits brought
us back from the shining fairyland of
our love, into the sinister reality of the
<i>Planetara</i>.</p>
<p>"Gregg, if they are listening—"</p>
<p>I pushed her away. This brave little
masquerader! Not for my life, or for
all the lives on the ship, would I consciously
have endangered her.</p>
<p>"But the ore," I said aloud. "There
was, in Grantline's message—See here,
Prince."</p>
<p>Coniston was too far away on the
deck to hear us. Anita went to my door
again and waved at him reassuringly.
I put my ear to the door opening, and
listened at the space across the grid of
the ventilator over my bunk. The hum
of a vibration would have been audible
at those two points. But there was
nothing.</p>
<p>"It's all right," I whispered. "Anita—not
you who was killed! I can hardly
realize it now. Not you whom they
buried yesterday morning."</p>
<p>We stood and whispered, and she
clung to me—so small beside me. With
the black robe thrown aside, it seemed
that I could not miss the curves of her
woman's figure. A dangerous game she
was playing. Her hair had been cut
short to the base of her neck, in the
fashion of her dead brother. Her eyelashes
had been clipped; the line of her
brows altered. And now, in the light
of my ray tube as it shone upon her earnest
face, I could remark other changes.
Glutz, the little beauty specialist, was
in this secret. With plastic skill he
had altered the set of her jaw with his
wax—put masculinity there.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[66]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>She was whispering: "It was—was
poor George whom Miko shot."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">had</span> now the true version of what
had occurred. Miko had been forcing
his wooing upon Anita. George
Prince was a weakling whose only good
quality was a love for his sister. Some
years ago he had fallen into evil ways.
Been arrested, and then discharged
from his position with the Federated
Radium Corporation. He had taken up
with evil companions in Great-New
York. Mostly Martians. And Miko
had met him. His technical knowledge,
his training with the Federated Corporation,
made him valuable to Miko's
enterprise. And so Prince had joined
the brigands.</p>
<p>Of all this, Anita had been unaware.
She had never liked Miko. Feared him.
And it seemed that the Martian had
some hold upon her brother, which puzzled
and frightened Anita.</p>
<p>Then Miko had fallen in love with
her. George had not liked it. And
that night on the <i>Planetara</i>, Miko had
come and knocked upon Anita's door.
Incautiously she opened it; he forced
himself in. And when she repulsed
him, struggled with him, George had
been awakened.</p>
<p>She was whispering to me now. "My
room was dark. We were all three
struggling. George was holding me—the
shot came—and I screamed."</p>
<p>And Miko had fled, not knowing
whom his shot had hit in the darkness.</p>
<p>"And when George died, Captain
Carter wanted me to impersonate him.
We planned it with Dr. Frank, to try
and learn what Miko and the others
were doing. Because I never knew
that poor George had fallen into such
evil things."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">could</span> only hold her thankfully
in my arms. The lost what-might-have-been
seemed coming back to us.</p>
<p>"And they cut my hair, Gregg, and
Glutz altered my face a little, and I did
my best. But there was no time—it
came upon us so quickly."</p>
<p>And she whispered, "But I love you,
Gregg. I want to be the first to say it:
I love you—I love you."</p>
<p>But we had the sanity to try and
plan.</p>
<p>"Anita, when you go back, tell Miko
we discussed radium ores. You'll have
to be careful, clever. Don't say too
much. Tell him we estimate the treasure
at a hundred and thirty millions."</p>
<p>I told her what Miko had vouchsafed
me of his plans. She knew all that.
And Snap knew it. She had had a few
moments alone with Snap. Gave me
now a message from him:</p>
<p>"We'll pull out of this, Gregg."</p>
<p>With Snap she had worked out a
plan. There were Snap and I; and
Shac and Dud Ardley, upon whom we
could doubtless depend. And Dr.
Frank. Against us were Miko and his
sister; and Coniston and Hahn. Of
course there were the members of the
crew. But we were numerically the
stronger when it came to true leadership.
Unarmed and guarded now. But
if we could break loose—recapture the
ship....</p>
<p>I sat listening to Anita's eager whispers.
It seemed feasible. Miko did
not altogether trust George Prince;
Anita was now unarmed.</p>
<p>"But I can make opportunity! I can
get one of their ray cylinders, and an
invisible cloak equipment."</p>
<p>That cloak—it had been hidden in
Miko's room when Carter searched for
it in A20—was now in the chart-room
by Johnson's body. It had been repaired
now; Anita thought she could
get possession of it.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">W</span><span class="upper">e</span> worked out the details of the
plan. Anita would arm herself,
and come and release me. Together,
with a paralyzing ray, we could
creep aboard the ship, overcome these
brigands one by one. There were so
few of the leaders. With them felled,
and with us in control of the turret and
the helio-room we could force the crew
to stay at their posts. There were,
Anita said, no navigators among Miko's<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[67]</SPAN></span>
crew. They would not dare oppose us.</p>
<p>"But it should be done at once,
Anita. In a few hours we will be at
the asteroid."</p>
<p>"Yes. I will go now—try and get
the weapons."</p>
<p>"Where is Snap?"</p>
<p>"Still in the helio-room. One of the
crew guards him."</p>
<p>Coniston was roaming the ship; he
was still loitering on the deck, watching
our door. Hahn was in the turret.
The morning watch of the crew were
at their posts in the hull-corridors; the
stewards were preparing a morning
meal. There were nine members of
subordinates altogether, Anita had calculated.
Six of them were in Miko's
pay; the other three—our own men
who had not been killed in the fighting—had
joined the brigands.</p>
<p>"And Dr. Frank, Anita?"</p>
<p>He was in the lounge. All the passengers
were herded there, with Miko
and Moa alternating on guard.</p>
<p>"I will arrange it with Venza," Anita
whispered swiftly. "She will tell the
others. Dr. Frank knows about it now.
He thinks it can be done."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> possibility of it swept me
anew. The brigands were of
necessity scattered singly about the
ship. One by one, creeping under cover
of an invisible cloak, I could fell them,
and replace them without alarming the
others. My thoughts leaped to it. We
would strike down the guard in the
helio-room. Release Snap. At the turret
we could assail Hahn, and replace
him with Snap.</p>
<p>Coniston's voice outside broke in
upon us. "Prince."</p>
<p>He was coming forward. Anita stood
in the doorway. "I have the figures,
Coniston. By God, this Haljan is with
us! And clever! We think it will
total a hundred and thirty millions.
What a stake!"</p>
<p>She whispered, "Gregg, dear—I'll be
back soon. We can do it—be ready."</p>
<p>"Anita—be careful of yourself! If
they should suspect you...."</p>
<p>"I'll be careful. In an hour, Gregg,
or less, I'll come back. All right, Coniston.
Where is Miko? I want to see
him. Stay where you are, Haljan! All
in good time Miko will trust you with
your liberty. You'll be rich like us all,
never fear."</p>
<p>She swaggered out upon the deck,
waved at the brigand, and banged my
cubby door in my face.</p>
<p>I sat upon my bunk. Waiting.
Would she come back? Would she be
successful?</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER XVI</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>In the Blue-lit Corridor</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">he</span> came. I suppose it was no more
than an hour: it seemed an eternity
of apprehension. There was the
slight hissing of the seal of my door.
The panel slid. I had leaped from my
bunk where in the darkness I was lying
tense.</p>
<p>"Prince?" I did not dare say,
"Anita."</p>
<p>"Gregg."</p>
<p>Her voice. My gaze swept the deck
as the panel opened. Neither Coniston
nor anyone else was in sight, save
Anita's dark-robed figure which came
into my room.</p>
<p>"You got it?" I asked her in a low
whisper.</p>
<p>I held her for an instant, kissed her.
But she pushed me away with quick
hands.</p>
<p>"Gregg, dear—"</p>
<p>She was breathless. My kisses, and
the tenseness of what lay before us
were to blame.</p>
<p>"Gregg, see, I have it. Give us a little
light—we must hurry!"</p>
<p>In the blue dimness I saw that she
was holding one of the Martian cylinders.
The smallest size; it would paralyze,
but not kill.</p>
<p>"Only one, Anita?"</p>
<p>"Yes. I had it before, but Miko took
it from me. It was in his room. And
this—"</p>
<p>The invisible cloak. We laid it on
my grid, and I adjusted its mechanism.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[68]</SPAN></span>
A cloak of the reflecting-absorbing
variety.<SPAN name="FNanchor_A_1" id="FNanchor_A_1"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_A_1" class="fnanchor">[A]</SPAN></p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">donned</span> it, and drew its hood,
and threw on its current.</p>
<p>"All right, Anita?"</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<p>"Can you see me?"</p>
<p>"No." She stepped back a foot or
two further. "Not from here. But you
must let no one approach too close."</p>
<p>Then she came forward, put out her
hand, fumbled until she found me.</p>
<p>It was our plan to have me follow
her out. Anyone observing us would
see only the robed figure of the supposed
George Prince, and I would escape
notice.</p>
<p>The situation about the ship was almost
unchanged. Anita had secured
the weapon and the cloak and slipped
away to my cubby without being observed.</p>
<p>"You're sure of that?"</p>
<p>"I think so, Gregg. I was careful."</p>
<p>Moa was now in the lounge, guarding
the passengers. Hahn was asleep in
the chart-room; Coniston was in the
turret. Coniston would be off duty
presently, Anita said, with Hahn taking
his place. There were look-outs in
the forward and stern watch-towers,
and a guard upon Snap in the helio-room.</p>
<p>"Is he inside the room, Anita?"</p>
<p>"Snap? Yes."</p>
<p>"No—the guard."</p>
<p>"No. He was sitting upon the spider
bridge at the door."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">his</span> was unfortunate. That guard
could see all the deck clearly. He
might be suspicious of George Prince
wandering around; it would be difficult
to get near enough to assail him. This
cylinder, I knew, had an effective
range of only some twenty feet.</p>
<p>Anita and I were swiftly whispering.
It was necessary now to decide exactly
what we were to do; once under observation
outside, there must be no hesitation,
no fumbling.</p>
<p>"Coniston is sharpest, Gregg. He
will be the hardest to get near."</p>
<p>The languid-spoken Englishman was
the one Anita most feared. His alert
eyes seemed to miss nothing. Perhaps
he was suspicious of this George Prince—Anita
thought so.</p>
<p>"But where is Miko?" I whispered.</p>
<p>The brigand leader had gone below a
few moments ago, down into the hull-corridor.
Anita had seized the opportunity
to come to me.</p>
<p>"We can attack Hahn in the chart-room
first," I suggested. "And get the
other weapons. Are they still there?"</p>
<p>"Yes. But Gregg, the forward deck
is very bright."</p>
<p>We were approaching the asteroid.
Already its light like a brilliant moon
was brightening the forward deck-space.
It made me realize how much
haste was necessary.</p>
<p>We decided to go down into the hull-corridors.
Locate Miko. Fell him, and
hide him. His non-appearance back on
deck would very soon throw the others
into confusion, especially now with our
impending landing upon the asteroid.
And under cover of this confusion we
would try and release Snap.</p>
<p>We had been arguing no more than a
minute or two. We were ready. Anita
slid my door wide. She stepped
through, with me soundlessly scurrying
after her. The empty, silent deck was
alternately dark with shadow-patches
and bright with blobs of starlight. A
sheen of the Sun's corona was mingled
with it; and from forward came the
radiance of the asteroid's mellow silver
glow.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[69]</SPAN></span></p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">nita</span> turned to seal my door;
within my faintly humming cloak
I stood beside her. Was I invisible in
this light? Almost directly over us,
close under the dome, the look-out sat
in his little tower. He gazed down at
Anita.</p>
<p>Amidships, high over the cabin
superstructure, the helio-room hung
dark and silent. The guard on its
bridge was visible. He, too, looked
down.</p>
<p>A tense instant. Then I breathed
again. There was no alarm. The two
guards answered Anita's gesture.</p>
<p>Anita said aloud into my empty cubby:
"Miko will come for you presently,
Haljan. He told me to tell you that he
wants you at the turret controls to land
us on the asteroid."</p>
<p>She finished sealing my door and
turned away; started forward along the
deck. I followed. My steps were
soundless in my elastic-bottomed shoes.
Anita swaggered with a noisy tread.
Near the door of the smoking room a
small incline passage led downward.
We went into it.</p>
<p>The passage was dimly blue-lit. We
descended its length, came to the main
corridor, which ran the length of the
hull. A vaulted metal passage, with
doors to the control rooms opening
from it. Dim lights showed at intervals.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> humming of the ship was more
apparent here. It drowned the
slight humming of my cloak. I crept
after Anita; my hand under the cloak
clutched the ray weapon.</p>
<p>A steward passed us. I shrank aside
to avoid him.</p>
<p>Anita spoke to him. "Where is
Miko, Ellis?"</p>
<p>"In the ventilator-room, Mr. Prince.
There was difficulty with the air renewal."</p>
<p>Anita nodded, and moved on. I
could have felled that steward as he
passed me. Oh, if I only had, how
different things might have been!</p>
<p>But it seemed needless. I let him go,
and he turned into a nearby door which
led to the galley.</p>
<p>Anita moved forward. If we could
come upon Miko alone. Abruptly she
turned, and whispered, "Gregg, if other
men are with him, I'll draw him away.
You watch your chance."</p>
<p>What little things may overthrow
one's careful plans! Anita had not
realized how close to her I was following.
And her turning so unexpectedly
caused me to collide with her sharply.</p>
<p>"Oh!" She exclaimed it involuntarily.
Her outflung hand had unwittingly
gripped my wrist, caught the electrode
there. The touch burned her, and
close-circuited my robe. There was a
hiss. My current burned out the tiny
fuses.</p>
<p>My invisibility was gone! I stood, a
tall black-hooded figure, revealed to the
gaze of anyone who might be near!</p>
<p>The futile plans of humans! We had
planned so carefully! Our calculations,
our hopes of what we could do,
came clattering now in a sudden wreckage
around us.</p>
<p>"Anita, run!"</p>
<p>If I were seen with her, then her own
disguise would probably be discovered.
That above everything would be disaster!</p>
<p>"Anita, get away from me! I must
try it alone!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">could</span> hide somewhere, repair the
cloak perhaps. Or, since now I was
armed, why could I not boldly start an
assault?</p>
<p>"Gregg, we must get you back to
your cubby!" She was clinging to me
in a panic.</p>
<p>"No! You run! Get away from me!
Don't you understand? George Prince
has no business here with me! They'd
kill you!"</p>
<p>Or worse—- Miko would discover it
was Anita, not George Prince.</p>
<p>"Gregg, let's get back to the deck."</p>
<p>I pushed at her. Both of us in sudden
confusion.</p>
<p>From behind me there came a shout.
That accursed steward! He had re<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[70]</SPAN></span>turned,
to investigate perhaps what
George Prince was doing in this corridor.
He heard our voices; his shout
in the silence of the ship sounded horribly
loud. The white-clothed shape of
him was in the nearby doorway. He
stood stricken in surprise at seeing me.
And then turned to run.</p>
<p>I fired my paralyzing cylinder
through my cloak. Got him! He fell.
I shoved Anita violently.</p>
<p>"Run! Tell Miko to come—tell him
you heard a shout! He won't suspect
you!"</p>
<p>"But Gregg—"</p>
<p>"You mustn't be found out! You're
our only hope, Anita! I'll hide, fix the
cloak, or get back to my cubby. We'll
try it again."</p>
<p>It decided her. She scurried down
the corridor. I whirled the other way.
The steward's shout might not have
been heard.</p>
<p>Then realization flashed to me. That
steward would be revived. He was one
of Miko's men: for two voyages he had
been a spy upon the <i>Planetara</i>. He
would be revived and tell what he had
seen and heard. Anita's disguise
would be revealed.</p>
<p>A cold-blooded killing I do protest
went against me. But it was necessary.
I flung myself upon him. I beat his
skull with the metal of my cylinder.</p>
<p>I stood up. My hood had fallen
back from my head. I wiped my bloody
hands on my useless cloak. I had
smashed the cylinder.</p>
<p>"Haljan!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">nita's</span> voice! A sharp note of
horror and warning. I became
aware that in the corridor, forty feet
down its dim length, Miko had appeared,
with Anita behind him. His
rifle-bullet-projector was leveled. It
spat at me. But Anita had pulled at
his arm.</p>
<p>The explosive report was sharply
deafening in the confined space of the
corridor. With a spurt of flame the
leaden pellet struck over my head
against the vaulted ceiling.</p>
<p>Miko was struggling with Anita.
"Prince, you idiot!"</p>
<p>"Miko, don't! It's Haljan! Don't
kill him—"</p>
<p>The turmoil brought members of the
crew. From the shadowed oval near
me they came running. I flung the useless
cylinder at them. But I was
trapped in the narrow passage.</p>
<p>I might have fought my way out. Or
Miko might have shot me. But there
was the danger that, in her horror,
Anita would betray herself.</p>
<p>I backed against the wall. "Don't
kill me! See, I will not fight!"</p>
<p>I flung up my arms. And the crew,
emboldened, and courageous under
Miko's gaze, leaped on me and bore me
down.</p>
<p>The futile plans of humans! Anita
and I had planned so carefully, and in
a few brief minutes of action it had
come only to this!</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER XVII</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>A Woman of Mars</i></h3>
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">o,</span> Gregg Haljan, you are not as
loyal as you pretend!"</p>
<p>Miko was livid with suppressed anger.
They had stripped the cloak from
me, and flung me back in my cubby.
Miko was now confronting me; at the
door Moa stood watching. And Anita
was behind her. I sat outwardly defiant
and sullen on my bunk. But I was
alert and tense, fearful still of what
Anita's emotion might betray her into
doing.</p>
<p>"Not so loyal," Miko repeated. "And
a fool! Do you think I am such a child
you can escape me!"</p>
<p>He swung around. "How did he get
out of here? Prince, you came in
here!"</p>
<p>My heart was wildly thumping. But
Anita retorted with a touch of spirit:</p>
<p>"I came to tell him what you commanded.
To check Hahn's latest figures—and
to be ready to take the controls
when we go into the asteroid's
atmosphere."</p>
<p>"Well, how did he get out?"<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[71]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"How should I know?" she parried.
Little actress! Her spirit helped to
allay my fear. She held her cloak close
around her in the fashion they had
come to expect from the George Prince
who had just buried his sister. "How
should I know, Miko? I sealed his
door."</p>
<p>"But did you?"</p>
<p>"Of course he did," Moa put in.</p>
<p>"Ask your look-outs," said Anita.
"They saw me—I waved to them just
as I sealed the door."</p>
<p>I ventured, "I have been taught to
open doors." I managed a sly, lugubrious
smile. "I shall not try it again,
Miko."</p>
<p>Nothing had been said about my killing
of the steward. I thanked my constellations
now that he was dead. "I
shall not try it again," I repeated.</p>
<p>A glance passed between Miko and
his sister. Miko said abruptly, "You
seem to realize that it is not my purpose
to kill you. And you presume
upon it."</p>
<p>"I shall not again." I eyed Moa.
She was gazing at me steadily. She
said, "Leave me with him, Miko...."
She smiled. "Gregg Haljan, we are no
more than twenty thousand miles from
the asteroid now. The calculations for
retarding are now in operation."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">t</span> was what had taken Miko below,
that and trouble with the ventilating
system, which was soon rectified.
But the retarding of the ship's velocity
when nearing a destination required
accurate manipulation. These brigands
were fearful of their own skill. That
was obvious. It gave me confidence. I
was really needed. They would not
harm me. Except for Miko's impulsive
temper, I was in no danger from them—not
now, certainly.</p>
<p>Moa was saying, "I think I may
make you understand, Gregg. We have
tremendous riches within our grasp."</p>
<p>"I know it," I added with sudden
thought. "But there are many with
whom to divide this treasure...."</p>
<p>Miko caught my intended implication.
"By the infernal, this fellow may
have felt he could seize the treasure
for himself! Because he is a navigator!"</p>
<p>Moa said vehemently, "Do not be
an idiot, Gregg! You could not do it!
There will be fighting with Grantline."</p>
<p>My purpose was accomplished. They
seemed to see me a willing outlaw like
themselves. As though it were a bond
between us. And they could win me.</p>
<p>"Leave me with him," said Moa.</p>
<p>Miko acquiesced. "For a few minutes
only." He proffered a heat-ray cylinder,
but she refused it.</p>
<p>"I am not afraid of him."</p>
<p>Miko swung on me. "Within an hour
we will be nearing the atmosphere.
Will you take the controls?"</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> set his heavy jaw. His eyes
bored into me. "You're a strange
fellow, Haljan. I can't make you out.
I am not angry now. Do you think,
when I am deadly serious, that I mean
what I say?"</p>
<p>His calm words set a sudden shiver
over me. I checked my smile.</p>
<p>"Yes," I said.</p>
<p>"Well then, I will tell you this: not
for all of Prince's well-meaning interference,
or Moa's liking for you, or my
own need of your skill, will I tolerate
more trouble from you. The next
time—I will kill you. Do you believe
me?"</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<p>"That is all I want to say. You kill
my men, and my sister says I must not
hurt you. I am not a child to be ruled
by a woman!"</p>
<p>He held his huge fist before my face.
"With these fingers I will twist your
neck! Do you believe it?"</p>
<p>"Yes." I did indeed.</p>
<p>He swung on his heel. "If Moa wants
to try and put sense into your head—I
hope she does. Bring him to the
lounge when you are finished, Moa.
Come, Prince—Hahn will need us." He
chuckled grimly. "Hahn seems to fear
we will plunge into this asteroid like<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[72]</SPAN></span>
a wild comet gone suddenly tangent!"</p>
<p>Anita moved aside to let him through
the door. I caught a glimpse of her
set white face as she followed him
down the deck.</p>
<p>Then Moa's bulk blocked the doorway.
She faced me.</p>
<p>"Sit where you are, Gregg." She
turned and closed the door upon us.
"I am not afraid of you. Should I be?"</p>
<p>"No," I said.</p>
<p>She came and sat down beside me.
"If you should attempt to leave this
room, the stern look-out has orders to
bore you through."</p>
<p>"I have no intention of leaving the
room," I retorted. "I do not want
to commit suicide."</p>
<p>"I thought you did. You seem
minded in such a fashion. Gregg, why
are you so foolish?"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">remained</span> silent.</p>
<p>"Why?" she demanded.</p>
<p>I said carefully, "This treasure—you
are many who will divide it. You have
all these men on the <i>Planetara</i>. And
in Ferrok-Shahn, others, no doubt."</p>
<p>I paused. Would she tell me? Could
I make her talk of that other brigand
ship which Miko had said was waiting
on Mars? I wondered if he had
been able to signal it. The distance
from here to Mars was great; yet upon
other voyages Snap's signals had gotten
through. My heart sank at the
thought. Our situation here was desperate
enough. The passengers soon
would be cast upon the asteroid: there
would be left only Snap, Anita and myself.
We might recapture the ship,
but I doubted it now. My thoughts
were turning to our arrival upon the
Moon. We three might, perhaps, be
able to thwart the attack upon Grantline,
hold the brigands off until help
from the Earth might come.</p>
<p>But with another brigand ship, fully
manned and armed, coming from Mars,
the condition would be immeasurably
worse. Grantline had some twenty
men, and his camp, I knew, would be
reasonably fortified. I knew, too, that
Johnny Grantline would fight to his
last man.</p>
<p>Moa was saying, "I would like to
tell you our plans, Gregg."</p>
<p>Her gaze was on my face. Keen eyes,
but they were luminous now—an emotion
in them sweeping her. But outwardly
she was calm, stern-lipped.</p>
<p>"Well, why don't you tell me?" I
said. "If I am to help you...."</p>
<p>"Gregg, I want you with us. Don't
you understand? We are not many.
My brother and I are guiding this
affair. With your help, I would feel
differently."</p>
<p>"The ship at Ferrok-Shahn—"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">M</span><span class="upper">y</span> fears were realized. She said,
"I think our signals reached it.
Dean tried, and Coniston was checking
him."</p>
<p>"You think the ship is coming?"</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<p>"Where will it join us?"</p>
<p>"At the Moon. We will be there in
thirty hours. Your figures gave that,
did they not, Gregg?"</p>
<p>"Yes. And the other ship—how fast
is it?"</p>
<p>"Quite fast. In eight days—or nine,
perhaps—it will reach the Moon."</p>
<p>She seemed willing enough to talk.
There was indeed, no particular reason
for reticence; I could not, she naturally
felt, turn the knowledge to account.</p>
<p>"Manned—" I prompted.</p>
<p>"About forty men."</p>
<p>"And armed? Long range projectors?"</p>
<p>"You ask very avid questions, Gregg!"</p>
<p>"Why should I not? Don't you suppose
I'm interested?" I touched her.
"Moa, did it ever occur to you, if once
you and Miko trusted me—which you
don't—I might show more interest in
joining you?"</p>
<p>The look on her face emboldened
me. "Did you ever think of that, Moa?
And some arrangement for my share of
this treasure? I am not like Johnson,
to be hired for a hundred pounds of
gold-leaf."</p>
<p>"Gregg, I will see that you get your
share. Riches, for you—and me."<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[73]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"I was thinking, Moa, when we land
at the Moon to-morrow—where is our
equipment?"</p>
<p>The Moon, with its lack of atmosphere,
needed special equipment. I had
never heard Carter mention what apparatus
the <i>Planetara</i> was carrying.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">M</span><span class="upper">oa</span> laughed. "We have located
air-suits and helmets—a variety
of suitable apparatus, Gregg. But we
were not foolish enough to leave Great-New
York on this voyage without our
own arrangements. My brother, and
Coniston and Prince—all of us shipped
crates of freight consigned to Ferrok-Shahn—and
Rankin had special baggage
marked 'theatrical apparatus.'"</p>
<p>I understood it now. These brigands
had boarded the <i>Planetara</i> with their
own Moon equipment, disguised as
freight and personal baggage. Shipped
in bond, to be inspected by the tax officials
of Mars.</p>
<p>"It is on board now. We will open
it when we leave the asteroid, Gregg.
We are well equipped."</p>
<p>She bent toward me. And suddenly
her long lean fingers were gripping my
shoulders.</p>
<p>"Gregg, look at me!"</p>
<p>I gazed into her eyes. There was
passion there; and her voice was suddenly
intense.</p>
<p>"Gregg, I told you once a Martian
girl goes after what she wants. It is
you I want—"</p>
<p>Not for me to play like a cad upon a
woman's emotions! "Moa, you flatter
me."</p>
<p>"I love you." She held me off, gazing
at me. "Gregg—"</p>
<p>I must have smiled. And abruptly
she released me.</p>
<p>"So you think it amusing?"</p>
<p>"No. But on Earth—"</p>
<p>"We are not on the Earth. Nor am
I of the Earth!" She was gauging me
keenly. No note of pleading was in
her voice; a stern authority; and the
passion was swinging to anger.</p>
<p>"I am like my brother: I do not understand
you, Gregg Haljan. Perhaps
you think you are clever? It seems
stupidity, the fatuousness of man!"</p>
<p>"Perhaps," I said.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">here</span> was a moment of silence.
"Gregg, I said I loved you. Have
you no answer?"</p>
<p>"No." In truth, I did not know what
sort of answer it would be best to
make. Whatever she must have read
in my eyes, it stirred her to fury. Her
fingers with the strength of a man in
them, dug into my shoulders. Her
gaze searched me.</p>
<p>"You think you love someone else?
Is that it?"</p>
<p>That was horribly startling; but she
did not mean it just that way. She
amended with caustic venom: "That
little Anita Prince! You thought you
loved her! Was that it?"</p>
<p>"No!"</p>
<p>But I hardly deceived her. "Sacred
to her memory! Her ratlike little face—soft
voice like a purring, sniveling
cat! Is that what you're remembering,
Gregg Haljan?" she sneered.</p>
<p>I tried to laugh. "What nonsense!"</p>
<p>"Is it? Then why are you cold under
my touch? Am I—a girl descended
from the Martian flame-workers—impotent
now to awaken a man?"</p>
<p>A woman scorned! In all the Universe
there could be no more dangerous
an enemy. An incredible venom shot
from her eyes.</p>
<p>"That miserable mouselike creature!
Well for her that my brother killed
her."</p>
<p>It struck me cold. If Anita was unmasked,
beyond all the menace of
Miko's wooing, I knew that the venom
of Moa's jealousy was a greater danger.</p>
<p>I said sharply, "Don't be simple,
Moa!" I shook off her grip. "You
imagine too much. You forget that I
am a man of the Earth and you a girl
of Mars."</p>
<p>"Is that reason why we should not
love?"</p>
<p>"No. But our instincts are different.
Men of the Earth are born to the
chase."<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[74]</SPAN></span></p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">was</span> smiling. With thought of
Anita's danger I could find it readily
in my heart to dupe this Amazon.</p>
<p>"Give me time, Moa. You attract me."</p>
<p>"You lie!"</p>
<p>"Do you think so?" I gripped her
arm with all the power of my fingers.
It must have hurt her, but she gave no
sign; her gaze clung to me steadily.</p>
<p>"I don't know what to think, Gregg
Haljan...."</p>
<p>I held my grip. "Think what you
like. Men of Earth have been known
to kill the thing they love."</p>
<p>"You want me to fear you?"</p>
<p>"Perhaps."</p>
<p>She smiled scornfully. "That is
absurd."</p>
<p>I released her. I said earnestly, "I
want you to realize that if you treat
me fairly, I can be of great advantage
to this venture. There will be fighting—I
am fearless."</p>
<p>Her venomous expression was softening.
"I think that is true, Gregg."</p>
<p>"And you need my navigating skill.
Even now I should be in the turret."</p>
<p>I stood up. I half expected she would
stop me, but she did not. I added,
"Shall we go?"</p>
<p>She stood beside me. Her height
brought her face level with mine.</p>
<p>"I think you will cause no more
trouble, Gregg?"</p>
<p>"Of course not. I am not wholly witless."</p>
<p>"You have been."</p>
<p>"Well, that is over." I hesitated.
Then I added, "A man of Earth does
not yield to love when there is work to
do. This treasure—"</p>
<p>I think that of everything I said,
this last most convinced her.</p>
<p>She interrupted, "That I understand."
Her eyes were smoldering. "When it
is over—when we are rich—then I will
claim you, Gregg."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">he</span> turned from me. "Are you
ready?"</p>
<p>"Yes. No! I must get that sheet
of Hahn's last figures."</p>
<p>"Are they checked?"</p>
<p>"Yes." I picked the sheet up from
my desk. "Hahn is fairly accurate,
Moa."</p>
<p>"A fool nevertheless. An apprehensive
fool."</p>
<p>A comradeship seemed coming between
us. It was my purpose to establish
it.</p>
<p>"Are we going to maroon Dr. Frank
with the passengers?" I asked.</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<p>"But he may be of use to us." I
wanted Dr. Frank kept aboard. I still
felt that there was a chance for us to
recapture the ship.</p>
<p>But Moa shook her head decisively.
"My brother has decided not. We will
be well rid of Dr. Frank. Are you
ready, Gregg?"</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<p>She opened the door. Her gesture
reassured the look-out, who was alertly
watching the stern watch-tower.</p>
<p>"Come, Gregg."</p>
<p>I stepped out, and followed her forward
along the deck, which now was
bright with the radiance of the nearby
asteroid.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER XVIII</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>Marooned on an Asteroid</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">fair</span> little world. I had thought
so before; and I thought so now
as I gazed at the asteroid hanging so
close before our bow. A huge, thin
crescent, with the Sun off to one side
behind it. A silver crescent, tinged
with red. From this near viewpoint,
all of the little globe's disc was visible.
The shadowed portion lay dimly red,
mysteriously; the sunlit crescent—widening
visibly is we approached—was
gleaming silver. Inky moonlike
shadows in the hollows, brilliant light
upon the mountain heights. The seas
lay in gray patches. The convexity of
the disc was sharply defined. So small
a world! Fair and beautiful, shrouded
with clouded areas.</p>
<p>"Where is Miko?"</p>
<p>"In the lounge, Gregg."</p>
<p>"Can we stop there?"<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[75]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>Moa turned into the lounge archway.
Strange, tense scene. I saw Anita at
once. Her robed figure lurked in an
inconspicuous corner; her eyes were
upon me as Moa and I entered, but she
did not move. The thirty-odd passengers
were huddled in a group. Solemn,
white-faced men, frightened women.
Some of them were sobbing. One Earth-woman—a
young widow—sat holding
her little girl, and wailing with uncontrolled
hysteria. The child knew me.
As I appeared now, with my gold-laced
white coat over my shoulders, the little
child seemed to see in my uniform a
mark of authority. She left her mother
and ran to me.</p>
<p>"You, please—you will help us? My
moms is crying."</p>
<p>I sent her gently back. But there
came upon me then a compassion for
these innocent passengers, fated to
have embarked upon this ill-starred
voyage. Herded here in this cabin,
with brigands like pirates of old guarding
them. Waiting now to be marooned
on an uninhabited asteroid roaming in
space. A sense of responsibility swept
me. I swung upon Miko. He stood
with a nonchalant grace, lounging
against the wall with a cylinder dangling
in his hand. He anticipated me.</p>
<p>"So, Haljan—she put some sense into
your head? No more trouble? Then
get into the turret. Moa, stay there
with him. Send Hahn here. Where is
that ass Coniston? We will be in the
atmosphere shortly."</p>
<p>I said, "No more trouble from me,
Miko. But these passengers—what
preparation are you making for them
on the asteroid?"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> stared in surprise. Then he
laughed. "I am no murderer.
The crew is preparing food, all we can
spare. And tools. They can build
themselves shelter—they will be picked
up in a few weeks."</p>
<p>Dr. Frank was here. I caught his
gaze, but he did not speak. On the
lounge couches there still lay the
quarter-score bodies. Rankin, who had
been killed by Blackstone in the fight;
a man passenger killed; a woman and
a man wounded.</p>
<p>Miko added, "Dr. Frank will take his
medical supplies—he will care for the
wounded. There are other bodies among
the crew." His gesture was deprecating.
"I have not buried them. We
will put them ashore; easier that way."</p>
<p>The passengers were all eyeing me.
I said:</p>
<p>"You have nothing to fear. I will
guarantee you the best equipment we
can spare. You will give them apparatus
with which to signal?" I demanded
of Miko.</p>
<p>"Yes. Get to the turret."</p>
<p>I turned away, with Moa after me.
Again the little girl ran forward.</p>
<p>"Come—speak to my moms! She is
crying."</p>
<p>It was across the cabin from Miko.
Coniston had appeared from the deck;
it created a slight diversion. He joined
Miko.</p>
<p>"Wait," I said to Moa. "She is afraid
of you. This is humanity."</p>
<p>I pushed Moa back. I followed the
child. I had seen that Venza was sitting
with the child's weeping mother.
This was a ruse to get word with me.</p>
<p>I stood before the terrified woman
while the little girl clung to my legs.</p>
<p>I said gently, "Don't be so frightened.
Dr. Frank will take care of you. There
is no danger—you will be safer on the
asteroid than here on the ship."</p>
<p>I leaned down and touched her shoulder.
"There is no danger."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">was</span> between Venza and the open
cabin. Venza whispered swiftly,
"When we are landing, Gregg, I want
you to make a commotion—anything—just
as the women passengers go
ashore."</p>
<p>"Why? No, of course you will have
food, Mrs. Francis."</p>
<p>"Never mind! An instant. Just
confusion. Go, Gregg—don't speak
now!"</p>
<p>I raised the child. "You take care
of mother." I kissed her.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[76]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>From across the cabin Miko's sardonic
voice made me turn. "Touching
sentimentality, Haljan! Get to your
post in the turret!"</p>
<p>His rasping note of annoyance brooked
no delay. I set the child down. I
said, "I will land us in an hour. Depend
on it."</p>
<p>Hahn was at the controls when Moa
and I reached the turret.</p>
<p>"You will land us safely, Haljan?" he
demanded anxiously.</p>
<p>I pushed him away. "Miko wants you
in the lounge."</p>
<p>"You take command here?"</p>
<p>"Of course, Hahn. I am no more anxious
for a crash than you."</p>
<p>He sighed with relief. "That is true.
I am no expert at atmospheric entry,
Haljan—nor Coniston, nor Miko."</p>
<p>"Have no fear. Sit down, Moa."</p>
<p>I waved to the look-out in the forward
watch-tower, and got his routine
gesture. I rang the corridor bells, and
the normal signals came promptly back.</p>
<p>"It's correct, Hahn. Get away with
you." I called after him. "Tell Miko
that things are all right here."</p>
<p>Hahn's small dark figure, lithe as a
leopard in his tight fitting trousers
and jacket with his robe now discarded,
went swiftly down the spider incline
and across the deck.</p>
<p>"Moa, where is Snap? By the infernal,
if he has been injured!—"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">U</span><span class="upper">p</span> on the helio-room bridge the
brigand guard still sat. Then I
saw that Snap was out there sitting
with him. I waved from the turret
window, and Snap's cheery gesture answered
me. His voice carried down
through the silver moonlight: "Land
us safely, Gregg. These weird amateur
navigators!"</p>
<p>Within the hour I had us dropping
into the asteroid's atmosphere. The
ship heated steadily. The pressure
went up. It kept me busy with the
instruments and the calculations. But
my signals were always promptly answered
from below. The brigand crew
did its part efficiently.</p>
<p>At a hundred and fifty thousand feet
I shifted the gravity plates to the landing
combinations, and started the
electronic engines.</p>
<p>"All safe, Gregg?" Moa sat at my
elbow; her eyes, with what seemed a
glow of admiration in them, followed
my busy routine activities.</p>
<p>"Yes. The crew works well."</p>
<p>The electronic streams flowed out
like a rocket tail behind us. The <i>Planetara</i>
caught their impetus. In the rarified
air, our bow lifted slightly, like a
ship riding a gentle ground swell. At
a hundred thousand feet we sailed
gently forward, hull down to the asteroid's
surface, cruising to seek a landing
space.</p>
<p>A little sea was now beneath us. A
shadowed sea, deep purple in the night
down there. Occasional green-verdured
islands showed, with the lines of white
surf marking them. Beyond the sea,
a curving coastline was visible. Rocky
headlines, behind which mountain foothills
rose in serrated, verdured ranks.
The sunlight edged the distant mountains;
and presently this rapidly turning
little world brought the sunlight
forward.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">t</span> was day beneath us. We slid
gently downward. Thirty thousand
feet now, above a sparkling blue
ocean. The coastline was just ahead:
green with a lush, tropical vegetation.
Giant trees, huge-leaved. Long dangling
vines; air plants, with giant pods
and vivid orchidlike blossoms.</p>
<p>I sat at the turret window, staring
through my glasses. A fair little world,
yet obviously uninhabited. I could fancy
that all this was newly-sprung vegetation.
This asteroid had whirled in
from the cold of the interplanetary
space far outside our Solar System. A
few years ago—as time might be measured
astronomically, it was no more
than yesterday—this fair landscape
was congealed white and bleak, with a
sweep of glacial ice. But the seeds of
life miraculously were here. The
miracle of life! Under the warming,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[77]</SPAN></span>
germinating sunlight, the verdure
sprung.</p>
<p>"Can you find landing space, Gregg?"</p>
<p>Moa's question brought back my wandering
fancies. I saw an upland glade,
a level spread of ferns with the forest
banked around it. A cliff-height nearby,
frowning down at the sea.</p>
<p>"Yes. I can land us there." I showed
her through the glasses. I rang the
sirens, and we spiraled, descending
further. The mountain tops were now
close beneath us. Clouds were overhead,
white masses with blue sky behind
them. A day of brilliant sunlight.
But soon, with our forward cruising,
it was night. The sunlight dropped
beneath the sharply convex horizon;
the sea and the land went purple.</p>
<p>A night of brilliant stars; the Earth
was a blazing blue-red point of light.
The heavens visibly were revolving; in
an hour or so it would be daylight
again.</p>
<p>On the forward deck now Coniston
had appeared, commanding half a dozen
of the crew. They were carrying up
caskets of food and the equipment
which was to be given the marooned
passengers. And making ready the
disembarking incline, loosening the
seals of the side-dome windows.</p>
<p>Sternward on the deck, by the lounge
oval, I could see Miko standing. And
occasionally the roar of his voice at
the passengers sounded.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">M</span><span class="upper">y</span> vagrant thought flung back into
Earth's history. Like this,
ancient travelers of the surface of the
sea were herded by pirates to walk
the plank, or put ashore, marooned
upon some fair desert island of the
tropic Spanish main.</p>
<p>Hahn came mounting our turret incline.
"All is well, Gregg Haljan?"</p>
<p>"Get to your work," Moa told him
sharply. "We land in an hour-quadrant."</p>
<p>He retreated, joining the bustle and
confusion which now was beginning
on the deck. It struck me—could I
turn that confusion to account? Would
it be possible, now at the last moment,
to attack these brigands? Snap still
sat outside the helio-room doorway.
But his guard was alert, with upraised
projector. And that guard, I saw, in
his position high amidships, commanded
all the deck.</p>
<p>And I saw too, as the passengers now
were herded in a line from the lounge
oval, that Miko had roped and bound
all of the men. And a clanking chain
connected them. They came like a
line of convicts, marching forward,
and stopped on the open deck-space
near the base of the turret. Dr. Frank's
grim face gazed up at me.</p>
<p>Miko ordered the women and children
in a group beside the chained men.
His words to them reached me: "You
are in no danger. When we land, be
careful. You will find gravity very
different—this is a very small world."</p>
<p>I flung on the landing lights; the
deck glowed with the blue radiance;
the search-beams shot down beside our
hull. We hung now a thousand feet
above the forest glade. I cut off the
electronic streams. We poised, with
the gravity-plates set at normal, and
only a gentle night-breeze to give us
a slight side drift. This I could control
with the lateral propeller rudders.</p>
<p>For all my busy landing routine, my
mind was on other things. Venza's
swift words back there in the lounge.
I was to create a commotion while the
passengers were landing. Why? Had
she and Dr. Frank, perhaps, some last
minute desperate purposes?</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">determined</span> I would do what
she said. Shout, or mis-order the
lights. That would be easy. But to
what advantage?</p>
<p>I was glad it was night—I had, indeed,
calculated our descent so that the
landing would be in darkness. But to
what purpose? These brigands were
very alert. There was nothing I could
think of to do which would avail us
anything more than a possible swift
death under Miko's anger.</p>
<p>"Well done, Gregg!" said Moa.</p>
<p>I cut off the last of the propellers.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[78]</SPAN></span>
With scarcely a perceptible jar, the
<i>Planetara</i> grounded, rose like a feather
and settled to rest in the glade. The
deep purple night with stars overhead
was around us. I hissed out our interior
air through the dome and hull-ports,
and admitted the night-air of
the asteroid. My calculations—of necessity
mere mathematical approximations—proved
fairly accurate. In temperature
and pressure there was no
radical change as the dome-windows
slid back.</p>
<p>We had landed. Whatever Venza's
purpose, her moment was at hand. I
was tense. But I was aware also, that
beside me Moa was very alert. I had
thought her unarmed. She was not. She
sat back from me; in her hand was a
small thin knife-blade.</p>
<p>She murmured tensely, "You have
done your part, Gregg. Well and skillfully
done. Now we will sit here
quietly and watch them land."</p>
<p>Snap's guard was standing, keenly
watching. The look-outs in the forward
and stern towers were also armed; I
could see them both gazing keenly
down at the confusion of the blue-lit
deck.</p>
<p>The incline went over the hull-side
and touched the ground.</p>
<p>"Enough!" Miko roared. "The men
first. Hahn, move the women back!
Coniston, pile those caskets to the side.
Get out of the way, Prince."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">nita</span> was down there. I saw her
at the edge of the group of women.
Venza was near her.</p>
<p>Miko shoved her. "Get out of the
way, Prince. You can help Coniston.
Have the things ready to throw off."</p>
<p>Five of the steward-crew were at the
head of the incline. Miko shouted up
at me:</p>
<p>"Haljan, hold our shipboard gravity
normal."</p>
<p>"Yes," I responded.</p>
<p>I had done so. Our magnitizers had
been adjusted to the shifting calculations
of our landing. They were holding
now at intensities, so that upon
the <i>Planetara</i> no change from fairly
normal Earth-gravity was apparent. I
rang a tentative inquiry signal; the
operator in the hull-magnetizer control
answered that he was at his post.</p>
<p>The line of men were first to descend.
Dr. Frank led them. He flashed a look
of farewell up at me and Snap as he
went down the incline with the chained
men passengers after him.</p>
<p>Motley procession! Twenty odd,
dishevelled, half-clothed men of three
worlds. The changing, lightening
gravity on the incline caught them.
Dr. Frank bounded up to the rail under
the impetus of his step: caught and
held himself, drew himself back. The
line swayed. In the dim, blue-lit glare
it seemed unreal, crazy. A grotesque
dream of men descending a plank.</p>
<p>They reached the forest glade. Stood
swaying, afraid at first to move. The
purple night crowded them; they stood
gazing at this strange world, their new
prison.</p>
<p>"Now the women."</p>
<p>Miko was shoving the women to the
head of the incline. I could feel Moa's
steady gaze upon me. Her knife-blade
gleamed in the turret light.</p>
<p>She murmured again, "In a few
minutes you can ring us away, Gregg."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">felt</span> like an actor awaiting his
cue in the wings of some turgid
drama the plot of which he did not
know. Venza was near the head of the
incline. Some of the women and children
were on it. A woman screamed.
Her child had slipped from her hand,
bounded up over the rail, and fallen.
Hardly fallen—floated down to the
ground, with flailing arms and legs,
landing in the dark ferns, unharmed.
Its terrified wail came up.</p>
<p>There was a confusion on the incline.
Venza, still on the deck, seemed to send
a look of appeal to the turret. My
cue?</p>
<p>I slid my hand to the light switchboard.
It was near my knees. I pulled
a switch. The blue-lit deck beneath
the turret went dark.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[79]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>I recall an instant of horrible, tense
silence, and in the gloom beside me I
was aware of Moa moving. I felt a
thrill of instinctive fear—would she
plunge that knife into me?</p>
<p>The silence of the darkened deck
was broken with a confusion of sounds.
A babble of voices; a woman passenger's
scream; shuffling of feet; and
above it all, Miko's roar:</p>
<p>"Stand quiet! Everyone! No movement!"</p>
<p>On the descending incline there was
chaos. The disembarking women were
clinging to the gang-rail; some of them
had evidently surged over it and fallen.
Down on the ground in the purple-shadowed
starlight I could vaguely see
the chained line of men. They too were
in confusion, trying to shove themselves
toward the fallen women.</p>
<p>Miko roared:</p>
<p>"Light those tubes! Gregg Haljan!
By the Almighty, Moa, are you up
there? What is wrong? The light-tubes—"</p>
<p>Dark drama of unknown plot! I wonder
if I should try and leave the turret.
Where was Anita? She had been down
there on the deck when I flung out the
lights.</p>
<p>I think twenty seconds would have
covered it all. I had not moved. I
thought, "Is Snap concerned with this?"</p>
<p>Moa's knife could have stabbed me.
I felt her lunge against me; and suddenly
I was gripping her, twisting her
wrist. But she flung the knife away.
Her strength was almost the equal of
my own. Her hand went for my throat,
and with the other hand she was
fumbling.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> deck abruptly sprang into
light again. Moa had found the
switch and threw it back.</p>
<p>"Gregg!"</p>
<p>She fought me as I tried to reach
the switch. I saw down on the deck
Miko gazing up at us. Moa panted,
"Gregg—stop! If he—sees you doing
this, he'll kill you—"</p>
<p>The scene down there was almost
unchanged. I had answered my cue.
To what purpose? I saw Anita near
Miko. The last of the women were on
the plank.</p>
<p>I had stopped struggling with Moa.
She sat back, panting; and then she
called: "Sorry, Miko. It will not happen
again."</p>
<p>Miko was in a towering rage. But
he was too busy to bother with me; his
anger swung on those nearest him. He
shoved the last of the women violently
at the incline. She bounded over. Her
body, with the gravity-pull of only a
few Earth-pounds, sailed in an arc and
dropped to the sward near the swaying
line of men.</p>
<p>Miko swung back. "Get out of my
way!" A sweep of his huge arm knocked
Anita sidewise. "Prince, damn you,
help me with those boxes!"</p>
<p>The frightened stewards were lifting
the boxes, square metal storage-chests
each as long as a man, packed
with food, tools, and equipment.</p>
<p>"Here, get out of my way, all of you!"</p>
<p>My breath came again; Anita nimbly
retreated before Miko's angry rush. He
dashed at the stewards. Three of them
held a box. He took it from them;
raised it at the top of the incline. Poised
it over his head an instant, with his
massive arms like gray pillars beneath
it. And flung it. The box catapulted,
dropped; and then, passing the Planetara's
gravity area, it sailed in a long
flat arc over the forest glade and crashed
into the purple underbrush.</p>
<p>"Give me another!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> stewards pushed another at
him. Like an angry Titan, he
flung it. And another. One by one
the chests sailed out and crashed.</p>
<p>"There is your food—go pick it up!
Haljan, make ready to ring us away!"</p>
<p>On the deck lay the dead body of
Rance Rankin, which the stewards had
carried out. Miko seized it, flung it.</p>
<p>"There! Go to your last resting
place!"</p>
<p>And the other bodies. Balch Blackstone,
Captain Carter, Johnson—Miko<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[80]</SPAN></span>
flung them. And the course masters
and those of our crew who had been
killed; the stewards appeared with
them; Miko unceremoniously cast them
off.</p>
<p>The passengers were all on the
ground now. It was dim down there.
I tried to distinguish Venza, but could
not. I could see Dr. Frank's figure at
the end of the chained line of men. The
passengers were gazing in horror at the
bodies hurtling over them.</p>
<p>"Ready, Haljan?"</p>
<p>Moa prompted me. "Tell him yes!"</p>
<p>I called, "Yes!" Had Venza failed
in her unknown purpose? It seemed
so. On the helio-room bridge Snap and
his guard stood like silent statues in
the blue-lit gloom.</p>
<p>The disembarkation was over.</p>
<p>"Close the ports," Miko commanded.</p>
<p>The incline came folding up with a
clatter. The port and dome-windows
slid closed. Moa hissed against my
ear:</p>
<p>"If you want life, Gregg Haljan, you
will start your duties!"</p>
<p>Venza had failed. Whatever it was,
it had come to nothing. Down in the
purple forest, disconnected now from
the ship, the last of our friends stood
marooned. I could distinguish them
through the blur of the closed dome—only
a swaying, huddled group was
visible. But my fancy pictured this
last sight of them—Dr. Frank, Venza,
Shac and Dud Ardley.</p>
<p>They were gone. There were left
only Snap, Anita, and myself.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">was</span> mechanically ringing us
away. I heard my sirens sounding
down below, with the answering clangs
here in the turret. The <i>Planetara's</i>
respiratory controls started; the pressure
equalizers began operating, and
the gravity plates shifted into lifting
combinations.</p>
<p>The ship was hissing and quivering
with it, combined with the grating of
the last of the dome ports. And Miko's
command:</p>
<p>"Lift, Haljan."</p>
<p>Hahn had been mingled with the
confusion of the deck, though I had
hardly noticed him; Coniston had remained
below, with the crew answering
my signals. Hahn stood now with
Miko, gazing down through a deck
window. Anita was alone at another.</p>
<p>"Lift, Haljan."</p>
<p>I lifted us gently, bow first, with
a repulsion of the bow plates. And
started the central electronic engine.
Its thrust from our stern moved us
diagonally over the purple forest trees.</p>
<p>The glade slid downward and away.
I caught a last vague glimpse of the
huddled group of marooned passengers,
staring up at us. Left to their
fate, alone on this deserted little world.</p>
<p>With the three engines going we slid
smoothly upward. The forest dropped,
a purple spread of tree-tops, edged with
starlight and Earth-light. The sharply
curving horizon seemed following us
up. I swung on all the power. We
mounted at a forty degree angle, slowly
circling, with a bank of clouds over us
to the side and the shining little sea
beneath.</p>
<p>"Very good, Gregg." In the turret
light Moa's eyes blazed at me. "I do
not know what you meant by darkening
the deck-lights." Her fingers dug
at my shoulders. "I will tell my brother
it was an error."</p>
<p>I said, "An error—yes."</p>
<p>"An error? I don't know what it was.
But you have me to deal with now. You
understand? I will tell my brother so.
You said, 'On Earth a man may kill the
thing he loves.' A woman of Mars may
do that! Beware of me, Gregg Haljan."</p>
<p>Her passion-filled eyes bored into
me. Love? Hate? The venom of a
woman scorned—a mingling of turgid
emotions....</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">twisted</span> away from her grip and
ignored her; she sat back, silently
watching my busy activities; the calculations
of the shifting conditions of
gravity, pressures, temperatures; a
checking of the score or more of instruments
on the board before me.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[81]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>Mechanical routine. My mind went
to Venza, back there on the asteroid.
The wandering little world was already
shrinking to a convex surface beneath
us. Venza, with her last unknown play,
gone to failure. Had I failed my cue?
Whatever my part, it seemed now that
I must have horribly mis-acted it.</p>
<p>The crescent Earth was presently
swinging over our bow. We rocketed
out of the asteroid's shadow. The glowing,
flaming Sun appeared, making a
crescent of the Earth. With the glass
I could see our tiny Moon, visually
seeming to hug the limb of its parent
Earth.</p>
<p>We were away upon our course
for the Moon. My mind flung ahead.
Grantline with his treasure, unsuspecting
this brigand ship. And suddenly,
beyond all thought of Grantline and
his treasure, there came to me a fear
for Anita. In God's truth I had been,
so far, a very stumbling inept champion—doomed
to failure with everything I
tried. It swept me, so that I cursed
my own incapacity. Why had I not
contrived to have Anita desert at the
asteroid? Would it not have been far
better for her there? Taking her
chance for rescue with Dr. Frank,
Venza and the others?</p>
<p>But no! I had, like an inept fool,
never thought of that! Had left her
here on board at the mercy of these
outlaws.</p>
<p>And I swore now that, beyond everything,
I would protect her.</p>
<p>Futile oath! If I could have seen
ahead a few hours! But I sensed the
catastrophe. There was a shudder within
me as I sat in that turret, docilely
guiding us out through the asteroid's
atmosphere, heading us upon our course
for the Moon.</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER XIX</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>In the Zed-light Glow</i></h3>
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">ry</span> again. By the infernal, Snap
Dean, if you do anything to
balk us!"</p>
<p>Miko scanned the apparatus with
keen eyes. How much technical knowledge
of signaling instruments did this
brigand leader have? I was tense and
cold with apprehension as I sat in a
corner of the helio-room, watching
Snap. Could Miko be fooled? Snap,
I knew, was trying to fool him.</p>
<p>The Moon spread close beneath us.
My log-chart, computed up to thirty
minutes past, showed us barely some
thirty thousand miles over the Moon's
surface. The globe lay in quadrature
beneath our bow quarter—a huge quadrant
spreading across the black starry
vault of the lower heavens. A silver
quadrant. The sunset caught the Lunar
mountains, flung slanting shadows over
the empty Lunar plains. All the disc
was plainly visible. The mellow Earth-light
glowed serene and pale to illumine
the Lunar night.</p>
<p>The <i>Planetara</i> was bathed in silver.
A brilliant silver glare swept the forward
deck, clean white and splashed
with black shadows. We had partly
circled the Moon, so as now to approach
it from the Earthward side. I had
worked with extreme concentration
through the last few hours, plotting the
trajectory of our curving sweep, setting
the gravity plates with constantly
shifting combinations. And with it a
necessity for the steady retarding of
our velocity.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">M</span><span class="upper">iko</span> for a time was at my elbow
in the turret. I had not seen
Coniston and Hahn of recent hours. I
had slept, awakened refreshed, and had
a meal. Coniston and Hahn remained
below, one or the other of them always
with the crew to execute my sirened
orders. Then Coniston came to take
my place in the turret, and I went with
Miko to the helio-room.</p>
<p>"You are skilful, Haljan." A measure
of grim approval was in Miko's
voice. "You evidently have no wish to
try and fool me in this navigation."</p>
<p>I had not, indeed. It is delicate work
at best, coping with the intricacies
of celestial mechanics upon a semicircular
trajectory with retarding ve<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[82]</SPAN></span>locity,
and with a make-shift crew we
could easily have come upon real difficulty.</p>
<p>We hung at last, hull-down, facing
the Earthward hemisphere of the Lunar
disc. The giant ball of the Earth lay
behind and above us—the Sun over our
stern quarter. With forward velocity
almost checked, we poised, and Snap
began his signals to the unsuspecting
Grantline.</p>
<p>My work momentarily was over. I
sat watching the helio-room. Moa was
here, close beside me; I felt always
her watchful gaze, so that even the play
of my expression needed reining.</p>
<p>Miko worked with Snap. Anita too
was here. To Miko and Moa it was
the somber, taciturn George Prince,
shrouded always in his black mourning
cloak, disinclined to talk; sitting alone,
brooding and cowardly sullen.</p>
<p>Miko repeated, "By the infernal, if
you try to fool me, Snap Dean!"</p>
<p>The small metal room, with its grid
floor and low-arched ceiling, glared
with moonlight through its windows.
The moving figures of Snap and Miko
were aped by the grotesque, misshapen
shadows of them on the walls. Miko
gigantic—a great, menacing ogre. Snap
small and alert—a trim, pale figure in
his tight-fitting white trousers, broad-flowing
belt, and white shirt open at
the throat. His face was pale and
drawn from lack of sleep and the torture
to which Miko had subjected him.
But he grinned at the brigand's words,
and pushed his straggling hair closer
under the red eyeshade.</p>
<p>"I'm doing my best, Miko—you can
believe it."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> room over long periods was
deadly silent, with Miko and Snap
bending watchfully at the crowded
banks of instruments. A silence in
which my own pounding heart seemed
to echo. I did not dare look at Anita,
nor she at me. Snap was trying to signal
Earth, not the Moon! His main
helios were set in the reverse. The
infra-red waves, flung from the bow
window, were of a frequency which
Snap and I believed that Grantline
could not pick up. And over against
the wall, close beside me and seemingly
ignored by Snap, there was a tiny ultra-violet
sender. Its faint hum and the
quivering of its mirrors had so far
passed unnoticed.</p>
<p>Would some Earth-station pick it
up? I prayed so. There was a thumb
nail mirror here which could bring an
answer. I prayed that it might swing.</p>
<p>Would some Earth telescope be able
to see us? I doubted it. The pinpoint
of the <i>Planetara's</i> infinitesimal
bulk would be beyond them.</p>
<p>Long silences, broken only by the
faint hiss and murmur of Snap's instruments.</p>
<p>"Shall I try the 'graphs, Miko?"</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<p>I helped him with the spectroheliograph.
At every level the plates showed
us nothing save the scarred and pitted
Moon-surface. We worked for an hour.
There was nothing. Bleak cold night
on the Moon here beneath us. A touch
of fading sunlight upon the Apennines.
Up near the South Pole, Tycho with
its radiating open rills stood like a
grim dark maw.</p>
<p>Miko bent over a plate. "Something
here? Is there?"</p>
<p>An abnormality upon the frowning
ragged cliffs of Tycho? We thought
so. But then it seemed not.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">nother</span> hour. No signal came
from Earth. If Snap's calls were
getting through we had no evidence
of it. Abruptly Miko strode at me from
across the room. I went cold and
tense; Moa shifted, alert to my every
movement. But Miko was not interested
in me. A sweep of his clenched
fist knocked the ultra-violet sender and
its coils and mirrors in a tinkling crash
to the grid at my feet.</p>
<p>"We don't need that, whatever it is!"</p>
<p>He rubbed his knuckles where the
violet waves had tinged them, and
turned grimly back to Snap.</p>
<p>"Where are your Gamma ray mirrors?<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[83]</SPAN></span>
If the treasure is exposed—"</p>
<p>This Martian's knowledge was far
greater than we believed. He grinned
sardonically at Anita. "If our treasure
is on this hemisphere, Prince, we
should pick up Gamma rays? Don't
you think so? Or is Grantline so cautious
it will all be protected?"</p>
<p>Anita spoke in a careful, throaty
drawl. "The Gamma rays came plain
enough when we passed here on the
way out."</p>
<p>"You should know," grinned Miko.
"An expert eavesdropper, Prince—I
will say that for you. Come Dean, try
something else. By God, if Grantline
does not signal us, I will be likely to
blame you—my patience is shortening.
Shall we go closer, Haljan?"</p>
<p>"I don't think it would help," I said.</p>
<p>He nodded. "Perhaps not. Are we
checked?"</p>
<p>"Yes." We were poised, very nearly
motionless. "If you wish an advance,
I can ring it. But we need a surface
destination now."</p>
<p>"True, Haljan." He stood thinking.
"Would a zed-ray penetrate those
crater-cliffs? Tycho, for instance, at
this angle?"<SPAN name="FNanchor_B_2" id="FNanchor_B_2"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_B_2" class="fnanchor">[B]</SPAN></p>
<p>"It might," Snap agreed. "You think
he may be on the Northern inner side
of Tycho?"</p>
<p>"He may be anywhere," said Miko
shortly.</p>
<p>"If you think that," Snap persisted,
"suppose we swing the <i>Planetara</i> over
the South Pole. Tycho, viewed from
there—"</p>
<p>"And take another quarter-day of
time?" Miko sneered. "Flash on your
zed-ray; help him hook it up, Haljan."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">moved</span> to the lens-box of the
spectroheliograph. It seemed that
Snap was very strangely reluctant:
Was it because he knew that the Grantline
camp lay concealed on the north
inner wall of Tycho's giant ring? I
thought so. But Snap flashed a queer
look at Anita. She did not see it, but
I did. And I could not understand it.</p>
<p>My accursed, witless incapacity! If
only I had taken warning!</p>
<p>"Here," commanded Miko. "A score
of 'graphs with the zed-ray. I tell you
I will comb this surface if we have to
stay here until our ship comes from
Ferrok-Shahn to join us!"</p>
<p>The Martian brigands were coming.
Miko's signals had been answered. In
ten days the other brigand ship, adequately
manned and armed, would be
here.</p>
<p>Snap helped me connect the zed-ray.
He did not dare even to whisper to me,
with Moa hovering always so close.
And for all Miko's sardonic smiling,
we knew that he would tolerate nothing
from us now. He was fully armed,
and so was Moa.</p>
<p>I recall that Snap several times tried
to touch me significantly. Oh, if only
I had taken warning!</p>
<p>We finished our connecting. The
dull gray point of zed-ray gleamed
through the prisms, to mingle with the
moonlight entering the main lens. I
stood with the shutter trip.</p>
<p>"The same interval, Snap?"</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<p>Beside me, I was aware of a faint
reflection of the zed-light—a gray
Cathedral shaft crossing the helio-room
and falling upon the opposite wall. An
unreality there, as the zed-light faintly
strove to penetrate the metal room-side.</p>
<p>I said, "Shall I make the exposure?"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">nap</span> nodded. But that 'graph was
never made. An exclamation from
Moa made us all turn. The Gamma
mirrors were quivering! Grantline had
picked our signals! With what undoubtedly
was an intensified receiving
equipment which Snap had not thought
Grantline able to use, he had caught
our faint zed-rays, which Snap was
sending only to deceive Miko. And
Grantline had recognized the <i>Planetara</i>,
and had released his occulting<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[84]</SPAN></span>
screens surrounding the radium ore.
The Gamma rays were here, unmistakable!</p>
<p>And upon their heels came Grantline's
message. Not in the secret system
he had arranged with Snap, but
unsuspectingly in open code. I could
read the swinging mirror, and so could
Miko.</p>
<p>And Miko decoded it triumphantly
aloud:</p>
<p>"<i>Surprised but pleased your return.
Approach Mid-Northern hemisphere,
region of Archimedes, forty thousand
toises</i><SPAN name="FNanchor_C_3" id="FNanchor_C_3"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_C_3" class="fnanchor">[C]</SPAN> <i>off nearest Apennine range.</i>"</p>
<p>The message broke off. But even its
importance was overshadowed. Miko
stood in the center of the helio-room,
triumphantly reading the light-indicator.
Its beam swung on the scale, which
chanced to be almost directly over
Anita's head. I saw Miko's expression
change. A look of surprise, amazement
came to him.</p>
<p>"Why—"</p>
<p>He gasped. He stood staring. Almost
stupidly staring for an instant.
And as I regarded him with fascinated
horror, there came upon his heavy gray
face a look of dawning comprehension.
And I heard Snap's startled intake of
breath. He moved to the spectroheliograph,
where the zed-ray connections
were still humming.</p>
<p>But with a leap Miko flung him
away. "Off with you! Moa, watch
him! Haljan, don't move!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">gain</span> Miko stood staring. Oh
dear God, I saw now that he was
staring at Anita!</p>
<p>"Why George Prince! How strange
you look!"</p>
<p>Anita did not move. She was stricken
with horror: she shrank back against
the wall, huddled in her cloak. Miko's
sardonic voice came again:</p>
<p>"How strange you look. Prince!" He
took a step forward. He was grim and
calm. Horribly calm. Deliberate.
Gloating—like a great gray monster in
human form toying with a fascinated,
imprisoned bird.</p>
<p>"Move just a little Prince. Let the
zed-ray light fall more fully."</p>
<p>Anita's head was bare. That pale,
Hamletlike face. Dear God, the zed-light
reflection lay gray and penetrating
upon it!</p>
<p>Miko took another step. Peering.
Grinning. "How amazing, George
Prince! Why, I can hardly believe it!"</p>
<p>Moa was armed with an electronic
cylinder. For all her amazement—what
turgid emotions sweeping her I
can only guess—she never took her eyes
from Snap and me.</p>
<p>"Back! Don't move, either of you!"
She hissed it at us.</p>
<p>Then Miko leaped at Anita like giant
gray leopard pouncing.</p>
<p>"Away with that cloak, Prince!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">stood</span> cold and numbed. And
realization came at last. The faint
zed-light glow had fallen by chance
upon Anita's face. Penetrated the
flesh; exposed, faintly glowing, the
bone-line of her jaw. Unmasked the
waxen art of Glutz.</p>
<p>And Miko had seen it.</p>
<p>"Why George, how surprising!
Away with that cloak!"</p>
<p>He seized her wrist, drew her forward,
beyond the shaft of zed-light,
into the brilliant light of the Moon.
And ripped her cloak from her. The
gentle curves of her woman's figure
were so unmistakable!</p>
<p>And as Miko gazed at them, all his
calm triumph swept away.</p>
<p>"Why, Anita!"</p>
<p>I heard Moa mutter: "So that is it?"
A venomous flashing look—a shaft
from me to Anita and back again. "So
that is it?"</p>
<p>"Why, <i>Anita</i>!"</p>
<p>Miko's great arms gathered her up
as though she were a child. "So I have
you back; from the dead delivered back
to me!"</p>
<p>"Gregg!" Snap's warning, and his
grip over my shoulders brought me a
measure of sanity. I had tensed to<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[85]</SPAN></span>
spring. I stood quivering, and Moa
thrust her weapon against my face.
The helio mirrors were swaying again
with another message from Grantline.
But it came ignored by us all.</p>
<p>In the glare of moonlight by the forward
window, Miko held Anita, his
great hands pawing her with triumphant
possessive caresses.</p>
<p>"So, little Anita, you are given back
to me."</p>
<p>Against her futile struggles he held
her.</p>
<p>Dear God, if only I had had the wit
to have prevented this!</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER XX</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>The Grantline Camp</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">n</span> the mid-northern hemisphere upon
the Earthward side of the Moon,
the giant crater of Archimedes stood
brooding in silent majesty. Grim, lofty
walls, broken, pitted and scarred, rising
precipitous to the upper circular rim.
Night had just fallen. The sunlight
clung to the crater-heights; it tinged
with flame the jagged peaks of the
Apennine Mountains which rose in
tiers at the horizon; and it flung great
inky shadows over the intervening lowlands.</p>
<p>Northward, the Mare Imbrium
stretched mysterious and purple, its
million rills and ridges and crater
holes flattened by distance and the
gathering darkness into a seeming level
surface. The night slowly deepened.
The dead-black vault of the sky blazed
with its brilliant starry gems. The
gibbous Earth hung high above the
horizon, motionless, save for the invisible
pendulum sway over the tiny arc,
of its libration: widening to quadrature,
casting upon the bleak naked
Lunar landscape its mellow Earth-glow.</p>
<p>Slow, measured process, this coming
of the Lunar night! For an Earth-day
the sunset slowly faded on the Apennines;
the poised Earth widened a little
further—an Earth-day of time, with
the Earth-disc visibly rotating, the
faint tracery of its oceans and continents
passing in slow, majestic review.</p>
<p>Another Earth-day interval. Then
another. And another. Full night now
enveloped Archimedes. Splotches of
Earth-light and starlight sheen slowly
shifted as the night advanced.</p>
<p>Between the great crater and the
nearby mountains, the broken, pseudo-level
lowlands lay wan in the Earth-light.
A few hundred miles, as distance
would be measured upon Earth.
A million million rills were here. Valleys
and ridges, ravines, sharp-walled
canyons, cliffs and crags—tiny craters
like pock-marks.</p>
<p>Naked, gray porous rock everywhere.
This denuded landscape! Cracked and
scarred and tumbled, as though some
inexorable Titan torch had seared and
crumbled and broken it, left it now congealed
like a wind-lashed sea abruptly
frozen into immobility.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">M</span><span class="upper">oonlight</span> upon Earth so
gently shines to make romantic
a lover's smile! But the reality of the
Lunar night is cold beyond human
rationality. Cold and darkly silent.
Grim desolation. Awesome. Majestic.
A frowning majesty that even to the
most intrepid human beholder is inconceivably
forbidding.</p>
<p>And there were humans here now.
On this tumbled plain, between Archimedes
and the mountains, one small
crater amid the million of its fellows
was distinguished this night by the
presence of humans. The Grantline
camp! It huddled in the deepest purple
shadows on the side of a bowl-like
pit, a crudely circular orifice with a
scant two miles across its rippling rim.
There was faint light here to mark the
presence of the living intruders. The
blue-glow radiance of Morrell tube-lights
under a spread of glassite.</p>
<p>The Grantline camp stood mid-way
up one of the inner cliff-walls of the
little crater. The broken, rock-strewn
floor, two miles wide, lay five hundred
feet below the camp. Behind it, the
jagged precipitous cliff rose another
five hundred to the heights of the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[86]</SPAN></span>
upper rim. A broad level shelf hung
midway up the cliff, and upon it Grantline
had built his little group of glassite
dome shelters. Viewed from above
there was the darkly purple crater floor,
the upflung circular rim where the
Earth-light tinged the spires and crags
with yellow sheen; and on the shelf,
like a huddled group of birds nests,
Grantline's domes clung and gazed
down upon the inner valley.</p>
<p>Intricate task, the building of these
glassite shelters! There were three.
The main one stood close at the brink
of the ledge. A quadrangle of glassite
walls, a hundred feet in length by half
as wide, and a scant ten feet high to its
flat-arched dome roof. Built for this
purpose in Great-New York, Grantline
had brought his aluminite girders and
braces and the glassite panels in sections.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> air here on the Moon surface
was negligible—a scant one five-thousandth
of the atmospheric pressure
at the sea-level on Earth. But within
the glassite shelter, a normal Earth-pressure
must be maintained. Rigidly
braced double walls to withstand the
explosive tendency, with no external
pressure to counteract it. A tremendous
necessity for mechanical equipment
had burdened Grantline's small
ship to its capacity. The chemistry of
manufactured air, the pressure equalizers,
renewers, respirators, the lighting
and temperature-maintenance systems—all
the mechanics of a space-flyer
were here.</p>
<p>And within the glassite double walls,
there was necessity for a constant circulation
of the Erentz temperature insulating
system.<SPAN name="FNanchor_D_4" id="FNanchor_D_4"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_D_4" class="fnanchor">[D]</SPAN></p>
<p>There was this main Grantline building,
stretching low and rectangular
along the front edge of the ledge.
Within it were living rooms, messroom
and kitchen. Fifty feet behind
it, connected by a narrow passage of
glassite, was a similar, though smaller
structure. The mechanical control
rooms, with their humming, vibrating
mechanisms were here. And an instrument
room with signaling apparatus,
senders, receivers, mirror-grids and
audiphones of several varieties; and an
electro-telescope, small but modern,
with dome overhead like a little Earth
observatory.</p>
<p>From this instrument building, beside
the connecting pedestrian passage,
wire cables for light, and air-tubes and
strings and bundles of instrument wires
ran to the main structure—gray snakes<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[87]</SPAN></span>
upon the porous, gray Lunar rock.</p>
<p>The third building seemed a lean-to
banked against the cliff-wall, a slanting
shed-wall of glassite fifty feet high and
two hundred in length. Under it, for
months Grantline's borers had dug into
the cliff. Braced tunnels were here,
penetrating back and downward into
this vein of radio-active rock.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> work was over now. The borers
had been dismantled and
packed away. At one end of the cliff
the mining equipment lay piled in a litter.
There was a heap of discarded ore
where Grantline had carted and
dumped it after his first crude refining
process had yielded it as waste. The
ore-slag lay like gray powder-flakes
strewn down the cliff. Tracks and ore-carts
along the ledge stood discarded,
mute evidence of the weeks and months
of work these helmeted miners had
undergone, struggling upon this airless,
frowning world.</p>
<p>But now all that was finished. The
radio-active ore was sufficiently concentrated.
It lay—this treasure—in a
seventy-foot pile behind the glassite
lean-to, with a cage of wires over it and
an insulation barrage guarding its
Gamma rays from escaping to mark its
presence.</p>
<p>The ore-shelter was dark; the other
two buildings were lighted. And there
were small lights mounted at intervals
about the camp and along the edge of
the ledge. A spider ladder, with tiny
platforms some twenty feet one above
the other, hung precariously to the
cliff-face. It descended the five hundred
feet to the crater floor; and, behind
the camp, it mounted the jagged
cliff-face to the upper rim-height,
where a small observatory platform was
placed.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">uch</span> was the outer aspect of the
Grantline Treasure Camp near the
beginning of this Lunar night, when,
unbeknown to Grantline and his score
of men, the <i>Planetara</i> with its brigands
was approaching. The night was perhaps
a sixth advanced. Full night. No
breath of cloud to mar the brilliant
starry heavens. The quadrant Earth
hung poised like a giant mellow moon
over Grantline's crater. A bright Earth,
yet no air was here on this Lunar surface
to spread its light. Only a glow,
mingling with the spots of blue tube-light
on the poles along the cliff, and
the radiance from the lighted buildings.</p>
<p>The crater floor was dimly purple.
Beyond the opposite upper rim, from
the camp-height, the towering top of
distant Archimedes was visible.</p>
<p>No evidence of movement showed
about the silent camp. Then a pressure
door in an end of the main building
opened its tiny series of locks. A
bent figure came out. The lock closed.
The figure straightened and gazed
about the camp. Grotesque, bloated
semblance of a man! Helmeted, with
rounded dome-hood suggestion of an
ancient sea diver, yet goggled and
trunked like a gas-masked fighter of
the twentieth century war.</p>
<p>He stooped presently and disconnected
metal weights which were upon his
shoes.<SPAN name="FNanchor_E_5" id="FNanchor_E_5"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_E_5" class="fnanchor">[E]</SPAN></p>
<p>Then he stood erect again, and with
giant strides bounded along the cliff.
Fantastic figure in the blue-lit gloom!
A child's dream of crags and rocks and
strange lights with a single monstrous
figure in seven-league boots.</p>
<p>He went the length of the ledge with
his twenty-foot strides, inspected the
lights, and made adjustments. Came
back, and climbed with agile, bounding
leaps up the spider ladder to the dome
on the crater top. A light flashed on
up there. Then it was extinguished.</p>
<p>The goggled, bloated figure came
leaping down after a moment. Grantline's
exterior watchman making his
rounds. He came back to the main
building. Fastened the weights on his<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[88]</SPAN></span>
shoes. Signaled within.</p>
<p>The lock opened. The figure went
inside.</p>
<p>It was early evening, after the dinner
hour and before the time of sleep,
according to the camp routine Grantline
was maintaining. Nine P. M. of
Earth Eastern-American time, recorded
now upon his Earth chronometer. In
the living room of the main building
Johnny Grantline sat with a dozen of
his men dispersed about the room,
whiling away as best they could the
lonesome hours.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">ll</span> as usual. This cursed Moon!
When I get home—if ever I do
get home—"</p>
<p>"Say your say, Wilks. But you'll
spend your share of the gold-leaf and
thank your constellations that you had
your chance!"</p>
<p>"Let him alone! Come on, Wilks,
take a hand here. This game is no good
with three."</p>
<p>The man who had been outside flung
his hissing helmet recklessly to the
floor and unsealed his suit. "Here, get
me out of this. No, I won't play. I
can't play your cursed game with nothing
at stake!"</p>
<p>"Commissioner's orders."</p>
<p>A laugh went up at the sharp look
Johnny Grantline flung from where he
sat reading in a corner of the room.</p>
<p>"Commander's orders. No gambling
gold-leafers tolerated here."</p>
<p>"Play the game, Wilks." Grantline
said quietly. "We all know it's infernal
doing nothing."</p>
<p>"He's been struck by Earth-light,"
another man laughed. "Commander, I
told you not to let that guy Wilks out
at night."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">rough</span> but good-natured lot of
men. Jolly and raucous by nature
in their leisure hours. But there was
too much leisure here now. Their
mirth had a hollow sound. In older
times, explorers of the frozen polar
zones had to cope with inactivity, loneliness
and despair. But at least they
were on their native world. The grimness
of the Moon was eating into the
courage of Grantline's men. An unreality
here. A weirdness. These fantastic
crags. The deadly silence. The
nights, almost two weeks of Earth-time
in length, congealed by the deadly
frigidity of Space. The days of black
sky, blaring stars and flaming Sun, with
no atmosphere to diffuse the daylight.
Days of weird blending sheen of illumination
with most of the Sun's heat
radiating so swiftly from the naked
Lunar surface that the outer temperature
still was cold. And day and night,
always the familiar beloved Earth-disc
hanging poised up near the zenith.
From thinnest crescent to full Earth,
and then steadily back again to
crescent.</p>
<p>All so abnormal, irrational, disturbing
to human senses. With the mining
work over, an irritability grew upon
Grantline's men. And perhaps since
the human mind is so wonderful, elusive
a thing, there lay upon these men
an indefinable sense of impending disaster.
Johnny Grantline felt it. He
thought about it now as he sat in the
room corner watching Wilks being
forced into the plaget-game, and he
found it strong within him. Unreasonable,
ominous depression! Barring the
accident which had disabled his little
space-ship when they reached this small
crater hole, his expedition had gone
well. His instruments, and the information
he had from the former explorers,
had picked up the ore-vein with a
scant month of search.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> vein had now been exhausted;
but the treasure was here. Nothing
was left but to wait for the <i>Planetara</i>.
The men were talking of that
now.</p>
<p>"She ought to be well mid-way from
here to Ferrok-Shahn by now. When
do you figure she'll be back here, and
signal us?"</p>
<p>"Twenty days. Give her another five
now to Mars, and five in port. That's<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[89]</SPAN></span>
ten. We'll pick her signals in three
weeks, mark me."</p>
<p>"Three weeks! Just give me three
weeks of reasonable sunrise and sunset!
This cursed Moon! You mean,
Williams, next daylight."</p>
<p>"Hah! He's inventing a Lunar language.
You'll be a Moon-man yet, if
you live here long enough."</p>
<p>Olaf Swenson, the big blond fellow
from the Scandia fiords, came and flung
himself down by Grantline.</p>
<p>"Ay tank they bane without not
enough to do, Commander. If the ore
yust would not give out—"</p>
<p>"Three weeks—it isn't very long,
Ollie."</p>
<p>"No. Maybe not."</p>
<p>From across the room somebody was
saying, "If the <i>Comet</i> hadn't smashed
on us, damn me but I'd ask the Commander
to let some of us take her back.
The discarded equipment could go."</p>
<p>"Shut up, Billy. She is smashed."</p>
<p>The little <i>Comet</i>, cruising in search
of the ore, had come to grief just as the
ore was found. It lay now on the crater
floor with its nose bashed into an upflung
spire of rock. Wrecked beyond
repair. Save for the pre-arrangement
with the <i>Planetara</i>, the Grantline party
would have been helpless here on the
Moon. Knowledge of that—although
no one ever suspected but that the
<i>Planetara</i> would come safely—served
to add to the men's depression. They
were cut off, virtually helpless on a
strange world. Their signalling devices
were inadequate even to reach
Earth. Grantline's power batteries were
running low.<SPAN name="FNanchor_F_6" id="FNanchor_F_6"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_F_6" class="fnanchor">[F]</SPAN> He could not attempt
wide-flung signals without jeopardizing
the power necessary for the routine
of his camp in the event of the <i>Planetara</i>
being delayed. Nor was his electro-telescope
adequate to pick small
objects at any great distance.<SPAN name="FNanchor_G_7" id="FNanchor_G_7"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_G_7" class="fnanchor">[G]</SPAN></p>
<p>All of Grantline's effort, in truth,
had gone into equipment for the finding
and gathering of the treasure. The
safety of the expedition had to that extent
been neglected.</p>
<p>Swenson was mentioning that now.</p>
<p>"You all agreed to it," Johnny said
shortly. "Every man here voted that,
above everything, what we wanted was
to get the radium."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">dynamic</span> little fellow, this
Johnny Grantline. Short of temper
sometimes, but always just, and a
perfect leader of men. In stature he
was almost as small as Snap. But he
was thick-set, with a smooth shaven,
keen-eyed, square-jawed face, and a
shock of brown tousled hair. A man
of thirty-five, though the decision of
his manner, the quiet dominance of his
voice, mode him seem older. He stood
up now, surveying the blue-lit glassite
room with its low ceiling close overhead.
He was bowlegged; in movement
he seemed to roll with a stiff-legged
gait like some sea captain of former
days on the deck of his swaying ship.
Queer-looking figure! Heavy flannel
shirt and trousers, boots heavily
weighted, and bulky metal-loaded belt
strapped about his waist.</p>
<p>He grinned at Swenson. "When we
divide this treasure, everyone will be
happy, Ollie."</p>
<p>The treasure was estimated by Grantline
to be the equivalent of ninety millions
in gold-leaf. A hundred and ten
millions in the gross as it now stood,
with twenty millions to be deducted by
the Federated Refiners for reducing it
to the standard purity of commercial
radium. Ninety millions, with only a
million and a half to come off for expedition
expenses, and the <i>Planetara</i>
Company's share another million. A
nice little stake.</p>
<p>Grantline strode across the room
with his rolling gait.</p>
<p>"Cheer up, boys. Who's winning
there? I say, you fellows—"</p>
<p>An audiphone buzzer interrupted
him, a call from the duty man in the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[90]</SPAN></span>
instrument room of the nearby building.</p>
<p>Grantline clicked the receiver. The
room fell into silence. Any call was
unusual—nothing ever happened here
in the camp.</p>
<p>The duty man's voice sounded over
the room.</p>
<p>"Signals coming! Not clear. Will
you come over, Commander?"</p>
<p>Signals!</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">t</span> was never Grantline's way to
enforce needless discipline. He
offered no objection when every man
in the camp rushed through the connecting
passages. They crowded the
instrument room where the tense duty
man sat bending over his helio receivers.
The mirrors were swaying.</p>
<p>The duty man looked up and met
Grantline's gaze.</p>
<p>"I ran it up to the highest intensity.
Commander. We ought to get it—not
let it pass."</p>
<p>"Low scale, Peter?"</p>
<p>"Yes. Weakest infra-red. I'm bringing
it up, even though it uses too much
of our power." The duty man was
apologetic.</p>
<p>"Get it," said Grantline shortly.</p>
<p>"I had a swing a minute ago. I think
it's the <i>Planetara</i>."</p>
<p>"<i>Planetara!</i>" The crowding group of
men chorused it. How could it be the
<i>Planetara</i>?</p>
<p>But it was. The call presently came
in clear. Unmistakably the <i>Planetara</i>,
turned back now from her course to
Ferrok-Shahn.</p>
<p>"How far away, Peter?"</p>
<p>The duty man consulted the needles
of his dial scale. "Close! Very weak
infra-red. But close. Around thirty
thousand miles, maybe. It's Snap Dean
calling."</p>
<p>The <i>Planetara</i> here within thirty thousand
miles! Excitement and pleasure
swept the room. The <i>Planetara's</i> coming
had for so long been awaited so
eagerly!</p>
<p>The excitement communicated to
Grantline. It was unlike him to be
incautious; yet now with no thought
save that some unforeseen and pleasing
circumstance had brought the <i>Planetara</i>
ahead of time; incautious Grantline
certainly was.</p>
<p>"Raise the ore-barrage."</p>
<p>"I'll go! My suit is here."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">willing</span> volunteer rushed out
to the ore-shed. The Gamma rays,
which in the helio-room of the <i>Planetara</i>
came so unwelcome to Snap and
me, were loosed.</p>
<p>"Can you send, Peter?" Grantline demanded.</p>
<p>"Yes, with more power."</p>
<p>"Use it."</p>
<p>Johnny dictated the message of his
location which we received. In his
incautious excitement he ignored the
secret code.</p>
<p>An interval passed. The ore was occulted
again. No message had come
from us—just Snap's routine signal in
the weak infra-red, which we hoped
Grantline would not get.</p>
<p>The men crowding Grantline's instrument
room waited in tense silence.
Then Grantline tried the telescope. Its
current weakened the lights with the
drain upon the distributors, and cooled
the room with a sudden deadly chill as
the Erentz insulating system slowed
down.</p>
<p>The duty man looked suddenly frightened.
"You'll bulge out our walls,
Commander. The internal pressure—"</p>
<p>"We'll chance it."</p>
<p>They picked up the image of the
<i>Planetara</i>! It came from the telescope
and shone clear on the grid—the segment
of star-field with a tiny, cigar-shaped
blob. Clear enough to be unmistakable.
The <i>Planetara</i>! Here now
over the Moon, almost directly overhead,
poised at what the altimeter scale
showed to be a fraction under thirty
thousand miles.</p>
<p>The men gazed in awed silence. The
<i>Planetara</i> coming....</p>
<p>But the altimeter needle was motionless.
The <i>Planetara</i> was hanging poised.</p>
<p>A sudden gasp went about the room.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[91]</SPAN></span>
The men stood with whitening faces,
gazing at the <i>Planetara's</i> image. And
at the altimeter needle. It was moving.
The <i>Planetara</i> was descending. But
not with an orderly swoop.</p>
<p>The image showed the ship clearly.
The bow tilted up, then dipped down.
But then in a moment it swung up
again. The ship turned partly over.
Righted itself. Then swayed again,
drunkenly.</p>
<p>The watching men were stricken into
horrified silence. The <i>Planetara's</i>
image momentarily, horribly, grew
larger. Swaying. Then turning completely
over, rotating slowly end over
end.</p>
<p>The <i>Planetara</i>, out of control, was
falling!</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER XXI</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>The Wreck of the</i> Planetara</h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">O</span><span class="upper">n</span> the <i>Planetara</i>, in the helio-room,
Snap and I stood with Moa's
weapon upon us. Miko held Anita.
Triumphant. Possessive. Then as she
struggled, a gentleness came to this
strange Martian giant. Perhaps he
really loved her. Looking back on it, I
sometimes think so.</p>
<p>"Anita, do not fear me." He held her
away from him. "I would not harm you.
I want your love." Irony came to him.
"And I thought I had killed you! But
it was only your brother."</p>
<p>He partly turned. I was aware of
how alert was his attention. He grinned.
"Hold them, Moa—don't let them do
anything foolish. So, Anita, you were
masquerading to spy upon me? That
was wrong of you." He was again
ironic.</p>
<p>Anita had not spoken. She held herself
tensely away from Miko; she had
flashed me a look—just one. What horrible
mischance to have brought this
catastrophe!</p>
<p>The completion of Grantline's message
had come unnoticed by us all.</p>
<p>"Look! Grantline again!" Snap said
abruptly.</p>
<p>But the mirrors were steadying. We
had no recording-tape apparatus; the
rest of the message was lost. The mirrors
pulsed and then steadied.</p>
<p>No further message came. There was
an interval while Miko waited. He held
Anita in the hollow of his great arm.</p>
<p>"Quiet, little bird. Do not fear me.
I have work to do, Anita—this is our
great adventure. We will be rich, you
and I. All the luxuries three worlds
can offer, all for us when this is over.
Careful, Moa! This Haljan has no wit."</p>
<p>Well could he say it! I, who had
been so witless to let this come upon
us! Moa's weapon prodded me. Her
voice hissed at me with all the venom
of a reptile enraged. "So that was your
game, Gregg Haljan! And I was so
graceless to admit love for you!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">nap</span> murmured in my ear, "Don't
move, Gregg! She's reckless."</p>
<p>She heard it. She whirled on him.
"We have lost George Prince, it seems.
Well, we will survive without his ore
knowledge. And you, Dean—and this
Haljan—mark me, I will kill you both
if you cause trouble!"</p>
<p>Miko was gloating. "Don't kill them
yet, Moa. What was it Grantline said?
Near the crater of Archimedes? Ring
us down, Haljan! We'll land."</p>
<p>He signaled the turret. Gave Coniston
the Grantline message, and audiphoned
it below to Hahn. The news
spread about the ship. The bandits
were jubilant.</p>
<p>"We'll land now, Haljan. Ring us
down. Come, Anita and I will go with
you to the turret."</p>
<p>I found my voice. "To what destination?"</p>
<p>"Near Archimedes. The Apennine
side. Keep well away from the Grantline
camp. We will probably sight it
as we descend."</p>
<p>There was no trajectory needed. We
were almost over Archimedes now. I
could drop us with a visible, instrumental
course. My mind was whirling
with a confusion of thoughts. What
could we do? What could we dare
attempt to do? I met Snap's gaze.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[92]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"Ring us down, Gregg," he said
quietly.</p>
<p>I nodded. I pushed Moa's weapon
away. "You don't need that. I obey
orders."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">W</span><span class="upper">e</span> went to the turret. Moa
watched me and Snap, a grim,
cold Amazon. She avoided looking at
Anita, whom Miko helped down the
ladders with a strange mixture of courtierlike
grace and amused irony. Coniston
gazed at Anita with falling jaw.</p>
<p>"I say! Not George Prince? The
girl—"</p>
<p>"No time for argument now," Miko
commanded. "It's the girl, masquerading
as her brother. Get below, Coniston.
Haljan takes us down."</p>
<p>The astounded Englishman continued
gazing at Anita. "I mean to say, where
to on the Moon? Not to encounter
Grantline at once, Miko? Our equipment
is not ready."</p>
<p>"Of course not. We will land well
away. He won't be suspicious—we can
signal him again after we land. We
will have time to plan, to assemble the
equipment. Get below, I told you."</p>
<p>The reluctant Coniston left us. I
took the controls. Miko, still holding
Anita as though she were a child, sat
beside me. "We will watch him, little
Anita. A skilled fellow at this sort of
work."</p>
<p>I rang my signals for the shifting of
the gravity plates. The answer should
have come from below within a second
or two. But it did not. Miko regarded
me with his great bushy eyebrows upraised.</p>
<p>"Ring again, Haljan."</p>
<p>I duplicated. No answer. The silence
was frightening. Ominous.</p>
<p>Miko muttered, "That accursed Hahn.
Ring again!"</p>
<p>I sent the imperative emergency
demand.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">N</span><span class="upper">o</span> answer. A second or two. Then
all of us in the turret were
startled. Transfixed. From below came
a sudden hiss. It sounded in the turret:
it came from shifting-room call-grid.
The hissing of the pneumatic valves of
the plate-shifters in the lower control
room. The valves were opening;
the plates automatically shifting into
neutral, and disconnecting!</p>
<p>An instant of startled silence. Miko
may have realized the significance of
what had happened. Certainly Snap and
I did. The hissing ceased. I gripped
the emergency plate-shifter switch
which hung over my head. Its disc was
dead! The plates were dead in neutral.
In the positions they were only placed
while in port! And their shifting
mechanisms were imperative!</p>
<p>I was on my feet. "Snap! Good
God, we're in neutral!"</p>
<p>Miko, if he had not realized it before,
was aware if it now. The Moon-disc
moved visibly as the <i>Planetara</i> lurched.
The vault of the heavens was slowly
swinging.</p>
<p>Miko ripped out a heavy oath. "Haljan!
What is this?"</p>
<p>He stood up, still holding Anita. But
there was nothing that he could do in
this emergency. "Haljan—what—"</p>
<p>The heavens turned with a giant
swoop. The Moon was over us. It
swung in dizzying arc. Overhead, then
back past our stern; under us, then
appearing over our bow.</p>
<p>The <i>Planetara</i> had turned over. Upending.
Rotating, end over end.</p>
<p>For a moment or two I think all of
us in that turret stood and clung. The
Moon-disc, the Earth, Sun and all the
stars were swinging past our windows.
So horribly dizzying. The <i>Planetara</i>
seemed lurching and tumbling. But it
was an optical effect only. I stared
with grim determination at my feet.
The turret seemed to steady.</p>
<p>Then I looked again. That horrible
swoop of all the heavens! And the
Moon, as it went past, seemed expanded.
We were falling! Out of control, with
the Moon-gravity pulling us inexorably
down!</p>
<p>"That accursed Hahn—" Miko,
stricken with his lack of knowledge of
these controls, was wholly confused.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</SPAN></span></p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">moment</span> only had passed. My
fancy that the Moon-disc was
enlarged was merely the horror of my
imagination. We had not fallen far
enough yet for that.</p>
<p>But we were falling. Unless I could
do something, we would crash upon the
Lunar surface.</p>
<p>Anita, killed in this <i>Planetara</i> turret.
The end of everything for us.</p>
<p>Action came to me. I gasped, "Miko,
you stay here! The controls are dead!
You stay here—hold Anita."</p>
<p>I ignored Moa's weapon which she
was still clutching mechanically. Snap
thrust her away.</p>
<p>"Sit back! Let us alone! We're falling!
Don't you understand?"</p>
<p>This deadly danger, to level us all!
No longer were we captors and captured.
Not brigands for this moment.
No thought of Grantline's treasure!
Trapped humans only! Leveled by the
common, instinct of self-preservation.
Trapped here together, fighting for our
lives.</p>
<p>Miko gasped. "Can you—check us?
What happened?"</p>
<p>"I don't know. I'll try."</p>
<p>I stood clinging. This dizzying
whirl! From the audiphone grid Coniston's
voice sounded.</p>
<p>"I say, Haljan, something's wrong!
Hahn doesn't signal."</p>
<p>The look-out in the forward tower
was clinging to his window. On the deck
below our turret a member of the crew
appeared, stood lurching for a moment,
then shouted, and turned and ran, swaying,
aimless. From the lower hull-corridors
our grids sounded with the
tramping of running steps. Panic
among the crew was spreading over
the ship. A chaos below decks.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">pulled</span> at the emergency switch
again. Dead....</p>
<p>But down below there was the manual
controls.</p>
<p>"Snap, we must get down. The signals."</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<p>Coniston's voice came like a scream
from the grid. "Hahn is dead—the controls
are broken! Hahn is dead!"</p>
<p>We barely heard him. I shouted,
"Miko—hold Anita! Come on, Snap!"</p>
<p>We clung to the ladders. Snap was
behind me. "Careful, Gregg! Good
God!"</p>
<p>This dizzying whirl. I tried not to
look. The deck under me was now
a blurred kaleidoscope of swinging
patches of moonlight and shadow.</p>
<p>We reached the deck. Ran, swaying,
lurching.</p>
<p>It seemed that from the turret Anita's
voice followed us. "Be careful!"</p>
<p>Within the ship our senses steadied.
With the rotating, reeling, heavens
shut out, there were only the shouts and
tramping steps of the panic-stricken
crew to mark that anything was amiss.
That, and a pseudo-sensation of lurching
caused by the pulsing of gravity—a
pull when the Moon was beneath our
hull to combine its force with our magnetizers;
a lightening when it was overhead.
A throbbing, pendulum lurch—that
was all.</p>
<p>We ran down to the corridor incline.
A white-faced member of the
crew, came running up.</p>
<p>"What's happened? Haljan, what's
happened?"</p>
<p>"We're falling!" I gripped him.
"Get below. Come on with us!"</p>
<p>But he jerked away from me. "Falling?"</p>
<p>A steward came running. "Falling?
My God!"</p>
<p>Snap swung at them. "Get ahead of
us! The manual controls—our only
chance—we need all you men at the
compressor pumps!"</p>
<p>But it was an instinct to try and get
on deck, as though here below we were
rats caught in a trap. The men tore
away from me and ran. Their shouts of
panic resounded through the dim, blue-lit
corridors.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">C</span><span class="upper">oniston</span> came lurching from the
control room. "I say—falling!
Haljan, my God, look at him!"</p>
<p>Hahn was sprawled at the gravity-<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[94]</SPAN></span>plate
switchboard. Sprawled, head-down.
Dead. Killed by something? Or
a suicide?</p>
<p>I bent over him. His hands gripped
the main switch. He had ripped it
loose. And his left hand had reached
and broken the fragile line of tubes
that intensified the current of the pneumatic
plate-shifters. A suicide? With
his last frenzy determined to kill us
all?</p>
<p>Then I saw that Hahn had been
killed! Not a suicide! In his hand he
gripped a small segment of black fabric,
a piece torn from an invisible cloak?
Was it?</p>
<p>The questions were swept away by
the necessity for action. Snap was rigging
the hand-compressors. If he could
get the pressure back in the tanks....</p>
<p>I swung on Coniston. "You armed?"</p>
<p>"Yes." He was white-faced and confused,
but not in a panic. He showed
me his heat-ray cylinder. "What do
you want me to do?"</p>
<p>"Round up the crew. Get all you
can. Bring them here to man these
pumps."</p>
<p>He dashed away. Snap shouted after
him. "Kill them down if they argue!"</p>
<p>Miko's voice sounded from the turret
call grid: "Falling! Haljan, you can
see it now! Check us!"</p>
<p>I did not answer that. I pumped with
Snap.</p>
<p>Desperate moments. Or was it an
hour? Coniston brought the men. He
stood over them with menacing weapon.</p>
<p>We had all the pumps going. The
pressure rose a little in the tanks.
Enough to shift a bow-plate. I tried it.
The plate slowly clicked into a new
combination. A gravity repulsion just
in the bow-tip.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">signaled</span> Miko. "Have we
stopped swinging?"</p>
<p>"No. But slower."</p>
<p>I could feel it, that lurch of the
gravity. But not steady now. A limp.
The tendency of our bow was to stay
up.</p>
<p>"More pressure, Snap."</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<p>One of the crew rebelled, tried to
bolt from the room. "God, we'll crash,
caught in here!"</p>
<p>Coniston shot him down.</p>
<p>I shifted another bow-plate. Then
two in the stern. The stern-plates
seemed to move more readily than the
others.</p>
<p>"Run all the stern-plates," Snap advised.</p>
<p>I tried it. The lurching stopped.
Miko called. "We're bow down. Falling!"</p>
<p>But not falling free. The Moon-gravity
pull upon us was more than
half neutralized.</p>
<p>"I'll go up, Snap, and try the engines.
You don't mind staying down?
Executing my signals?"</p>
<p>"You idiot!" He gripped my shoulders.
His eyes were gleaming, his face
haggard, but his pale lips twitched with
a smile.</p>
<p>"Maybe it's good-by, Gregg. We'll
fall—fighting."</p>
<p>"Yes. Fighting. Coniston, you keep
the pressure up."</p>
<p>With the broken set-tubes it took
nearly all the pressure to maintain the
few plates I had shifted. One slipped
back to neutral. Then the pumps
gained on it, and it shifted again.</p>
<p>I dashed up to the deck. Ah, the
Moon was so close now! So horribly
close! The deck shadows were still.
Through the forward bow windows the
Moon surface glared up at us.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">reached</span> the turret. The <i>Planetara</i>
was steady. Pitched bow-down,
half falling, half sliding like a rocket
downward. The scarred surface of the
Moon spread wide under us.</p>
<p>These last horrible minutes were a
blur. And there was always Anita's
face. She left Miko. Faced with death,
he sat clinging. Ignoring her, Moa,
too, sat apart. Staring—</p>
<p>And Anita crept to me. "Gregg, dear
one. The end...."</p>
<p>I tried the electronic engines from
the stern, setting them in the reverse.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[95]</SPAN></span>
The streams of their light glowed from
the stern, forward along our hull, and
flared down from our bow toward the
Lunar surface. But no atmosphere was
here to give resistance. Perhaps the
electronic streams checked our fall a
little. The pumps gave us pressure,
just in the last minutes, to slide a few
of the hull-plates. But our bow stayed
down. We slid, like a spent rocket
falling.</p>
<p>I recall the horror of that expanding
Lunar surface. The maw of Archimedes
yawning. A blob. Widening to a great
pit. Then I saw it was to one side.
Rushing upward.</p>
<p>A phantasmagoria of uprushing
crags. Black and gray. Spires tinged
with Earth-light.</p>
<p>"Gregg, dear one—good-by."</p>
<p>Her gentle arms around me. The
end of everything for us. I recall murmuring,
"Not falling free, Anita. Some
hull-plates are set."</p>
<p>My dials showed another plate shifting,
checking us a little further. Good
old Snap.</p>
<p>I calculated the next best plate to
shift. I tried it. Slid it over. Good
old Snap....</p>
<p>Then everything faded but the feeling
of Anita's arms around me.</p>
<p>"Gregg, dear one—"</p>
<p>The end of everything for us....</p>
<p>There was an up-rush of gray-black
rock.</p>
<p>An impact....</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<h3>CHAPTER XXII</h3>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>The Hiss of Death</i></h3>
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">opened</span> my eyes to a dark blur
of confusion. My shoulder hurt—a
pain shooting through it. Something
lay like a weight on me. I could not
seem to move my left arm. Very
queer! Then I moved it, and it hurt.
I was lying twisted: I sat up. And
with a rush, memory came. The crash
was over. I am not dead. Anita—</p>
<p>She was lying beside me. There was
a little light here in this silent blur—a
soft, mellow Earth-light filtering in
the window. The weight on me was
Anita. She lay sprawled, her head and
shoulders half way across my lap.</p>
<p>Not dead! Thank God, not dead!
She moved. Her arms went around me,
and I lifted her. The Earth-light
glowed on her pale face; but her eyes
opened and she faintly smiled.</p>
<p>"It's past, Anita! We've struck, and
we're still alive."</p>
<p>I held her as though all life's turgid
danger were powerless to touch us.</p>
<p>But in the silence my floating senses
were brought back to reality by a faint
sound forcing itself upon me. A little
hiss. The faintest murmuring breath
like a hiss. Escaping air!</p>
<p>I cast off her clinging arms. "Anita,
this is madness!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">F</span><span class="upper">or</span> minutes we must have been
lying there in the heaven of our
embrace. But air was escaping! The
<i>Planetara's</i> dome was broken—or cracked—and
our precious air was hissing out.</p>
<p>Full reality came to me at last. I
was not seriously injured. I found that
I could move freely. I could stand. A
twisted shoulder, a limp left arm, but
they were better in a moment.</p>
<p>And Anita did not seem to be hurt.
Blood was upon her. But not her blood.</p>
<p>Beside Anita, stretched face down on
the turret grid, was the giant figure of
Miko. The blood lay in a small pool
against his face. A widening pool.</p>
<p>Moa was here. I thought her body
twitched; then was still. This soundless
wreckage! In the dim glow of
the wrecked turret with its two motionless,
broken human figures, it seemed
as though Anita and I were ghouls
prowling. I saw that the turret had
fallen over to the <i>Planetara's</i> deck. It
lay dashed against the dome-side.</p>
<p>The deck was aslant. A litter of
wreckage. A broken human figure
showed—one of the crew, who at the
last must have come running up. The
forward observation tower was down
on the chart-room roof: in its metal
tangle I thought I could see the legs
of the tower look-out.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[96]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>So this was the end of the brigands'
adventure! The <i>Planetara's</i> last voyage!
How small and futile are human
struggles! Miko's daring enterprise—so
villainous, inhuman—brought all in
a few moments to this silent tragedy.
The <i>Planetara</i> had fallen thirty thousand
miles. But why? What had happened
to Hahn? And where was Coniston,
down in this broken hull?</p>
<p>And Snap. I thought suddenly of
Snap.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">clutched</span> at my wandering wits.
This inactivity was death. The
escaping air hissed in my ears. Our
precious air, escaping away into the
vacant desolation of the Lunar emptiness.
Through one of the twisted,
slanting dome-windows a rocky spire
was visible. The <i>Planetara</i> lay bow-down,
wedged in a jagged cradle of
Lunar rock. A miracle that the hull
and dome had held together.</p>
<p>"Anita, we must get out of here!"</p>
<p>I thought I was fully alert now. I
recalled that the brigands had spoken
of having partly assembled their Moon
equipment. If only we could find suits
and helmets!</p>
<p>"We must get out," I repeated. "Get
to Grantline's camp."</p>
<p>"Their helmets are in the forward
storage room, Gregg. I saw them
there."</p>
<p>She was staring at the fallen Miko
and Moa. She shuddered and turned
away and gripped me. "In the forward
storage room, by the port of the emergency
lock-exit."</p>
<p>If only the exit locks would operate!
We must get out of here, but find
Snap first. Good old Snap! Would
we find him lying dead?</p>
<p>We climbed from the slanting, fallen
turret, over the wreckage of the littered
deck. It was not difficult, a lightness
was upon us. The <i>Planetara's</i>
gravity-magnetizers were dead: this
was only the light Moon-gravity pulling
us.</p>
<p>"Careful, Anita. Don't jump too
freely."</p>
<p>We leaped along the deck. The hiss
of the escaping pressure was like a
clanging gong of warning to tell us to
hurry. The hiss of death so close!</p>
<p>"Snap—" I murmured.</p>
<p>"Oh, Gregg. I pray we may find him
alive—!"</p>
<p>"And get out. We've got to rush it.
Get out and find the Grantline camp."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">B</span><span class="upper">ut</span> how far? Which way? I
must remember to take food and
water. If the helmets were equipped
with admission ports. If we could find
Snap. If the exit locks would work
to let us out.</p>
<p>With a fifteen foot leap we cleared
a pile of broken deck chairs. A man
lay groaning near them. I went back
with a rush. Not Snap! A steward.
He had been a brigand, but he was a
steward to me now.</p>
<p>"Get up! This is Haljan. Hurry, we
must get out of here. The air is escaping!"</p>
<p>But he sank back and lay still. No
time to find if I could help him: there
were Anita and Snap to save.</p>
<p>We found a broken entrance to one
of the descending passages. I flung
the debris aside and cleared it. Like
a giant of strength with only this
Moon-gravity holding me, I raised a
broken segment of the superstructure
and heaved it back.</p>
<p>Anita and I dropped ourselves down
the sloping passage. The interior of
the wrecked ship was silent and dim.
An occasional passage light was still
burning. The passage and all the
rooms lay askew. Wreckage everywhere:
but the double-dome and hull-shell
had withstood the shock. Then I
realized that the Erentz system was
slowing down. Our heat, like our air,
was escaping, radiating away, a deadly
chill settling upon everything. And
our walls were bulging. The silence
and the deadly chill of death would
soon be here in these wrecked corridors.
The end of the <i>Planetara</i>. I
wondered vaguely if the walls would
explode.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[97]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>We prowled like ghouls. We did not
see Coniston. Snap had been by the
shifter-pumps. We found him in the
oval doorway. He lay sprawled. Dead?
No, he moved. He sat up before we
could get to him. He seemed confused,
but his senses clarified with the
movement of our figures over him.</p>
<p>"Gregg! Why, Anita!"</p>
<p>"Snap! You're all right? We struck—the
air is escaping."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> pushed me away. He tried to
stand. "I'm all right. I was up
a minute ago. Gregg, it's getting cold.
Where is she? I had her here—she
wasn't killed. I spoke to her."</p>
<p>Irrational!</p>
<p>"Snap!" I held him, shook him.
"Snap, old fellow!"</p>
<p>He said, normally. "Easy, Gregg. I'm
all right now."</p>
<p>Anita gripped him. "Who, Snap?"</p>
<p>"She! There she is."</p>
<p>Another figure was here! On the
grid-floor by the door oval. A figure
partly shrouded in a broken invisible
cloak and hood. An invisible cloak! I
saw a white face with opened eyes regarding
me. The face of a girl.</p>
<p>Venza!</p>
<p>I bent down. "You!"</p>
<p>Anita cried, "Venza!"</p>
<p>Venza here? Why—how—my
thoughts swept away. Venza here,
dying? Her eyes closed. But she murmured
to Anita. "Where is he? I
want him."</p>
<p>Dying? I murmured impulsively,
"Here I am, Venza dear." Gently, as
one would speak with gentle sympathy
to humor the dying. "Here I am,
Venza."</p>
<p>But it was only the confusion of the
shock upon her. And it was upon us
all. She pushed at Anita. "I want
him." She saw me. This whimsical
Venus girl! Even here as we gathered,
all of us blurred by the shock, confused
in the dim, wrecked ship with the chill
of death coming—even here she could
make a jest. Her pale lips smiled.</p>
<p>"You, Gregg. I'm not hurt—I don't
think I'm hurt." She managed to get
herself up on one elbow. "Did you
think I wanted you with my dying
breath? Why, what conceit! Not you,
Handsome Haljan! I was calling Snap."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> was down to her. "We're all
right, Venza. It's over. We
must get out of the ship—the air is
escaping."</p>
<p>We gathered in the oval doorway.
We fought the confusion of panic.</p>
<p>"The exit port is this way."</p>
<p>Or was it? I answered Snap, "Yes,
I think so."</p>
<p>The ship suddenly seemed a stranger
to me. So cold. So vibrationless.
Broken lights. These slanting, wrecked
corridors. With the ventilating fans
stilled, the air was turning fetid. Chilling.
And thinning, with escaping pressure,
rarifying so that I could feel the
grasp of it in my lungs and the pin-pricks
of my burning cheeks.</p>
<p>We started off. Four of us, still alive
in this silent ship of death. My
blurred thoughts tried to cope with it
all. Venza here. I recalled how she
had bade me create a diversion when
the women passengers were landing on
the asteroid. She had carried out her
purpose! In the confusion she had not
gone ashore. A stowaway here. She
had secured the cloak. Prowling, to
try and help us, she had come upon
Hahn. Had seized his ray-cylinder and
struck him down, and been herself
knocked unconscious by his dying
lunge, which also had broken the
tubes and wrecked the <i>Planetara</i>. And
Venza, unconscious, had been lying
here with the mechanism of her cloak
still operating, so that we did not see
her when we came and found why
Hahn did not answer my signals.</p>
<p>"It's here, Gregg."</p>
<p>Snap and I lifted the pile of Moon
equipment. We located four suits and
helmets and the mechanisms to operate
them.</p>
<p>"More are in the chart-room," Anita
said.</p>
<p>But we needed no others. I robed<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[98]</SPAN></span>
Anita, and showed her the mechanisms.</p>
<p>"Yes. I understand."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">nap</span> was helping Venza. We were
all stiff from the cold; but within
the suits and their pulsing currents, the
blessed warmth came again.</p>
<p>The helmets had admission ports
through which food and drink could be
taken. I stood with my helmet ready.
Anita, Venza and Snap were bloated
and grotesque beside me. We had
found food and water here, assembled
in portable cases which the brigands
had prepared. Snap lifted them, and
signed to me he was ready.</p>
<p>My helmet shut out all sounds save
my own breathing, my pounding heart,
and the murmur of the mechanism. The
blessed warmth and pure air were good.</p>
<p>We reached the hull port-locks.
They operated! We went through in
the light of the head-lamps over our
foreheads.</p>
<p>I closed the locks after us. An instinct
to keep the air in the ship for the
other trapped humans lying there.</p>
<p>We slid down the sloping side of the
<i>Planetara</i>. We were unweighted, irrationally
agile with the slight gravity.
I fell a dozen feet and landed with
barely a jar.</p>
<p>We were out on the Lunar surface.
A great sloping ramp of crags stretched
down before us. Gray-black rock
tinged with Earth-light. The Earth
hung amid the stars in the blackness
overhead like a huge section of glowing
yellow ball.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">his</span> grim, desolate, silent landscape!
Beyond the ramp, fifty
feet below us, a tumbled naked plain
stretched away into blurred distance.
But I could see mountains off there.
Behind us the towering, frowning
rampart-wall of Archimedes loomed
against the sky.</p>
<p>I had turned to look back at the
<i>Planetara</i>. She lay broken, wedged between
spires of upstanding rock. A
few of her lights still gleamed. The
end of the <i>Planetara</i>!</p>
<p>The three grotesque figures of Anita,
Venza and Snap had started off.
Hunchback figures with the tanks
mounted on their shoulders. I bounded
and caught them. I touched Snap. We
made audiphone contact.</p>
<p>"Which way do you think?" I demanded.</p>
<p>"I think this way, down the ramp.
Away from Archimedes, toward the
mountains. It shouldn't be too far."</p>
<p>"You run with Venza. I'll hold
Anita."</p>
<p>He nodded. "But we must keep together,
Gregg."</p>
<p>We could soon run freely. Down the
ramp, out over the tumbled plain.
Bounding, grotesque leaping strides.
The girls were more agile, more skilful.
They were soon leading us. The
Earth-shadows of their figures leaped
beside them. The <i>Planetara</i> faded into
the distance behind us. Archimedes
stood back there. Ahead, the mountains
came closer.</p>
<p>An hour perhaps. I lost count of
time. Occasionally we stopped to rest.
Were we going toward the Grantline
camp? Would they see our tiny waving
headlights?</p>
<p>Another interval. Then far ahead of
us on the ragged plain, lights showed!
Moving tiny spots of light! Headlights
on helmeted figures!</p>
<p>We ran, monstrously leaping. A
group of figures were off there. Grantline's
party? Snap gripped me.</p>
<p>"Grantline! We're safe, Gregg!
Safe!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> took his bulb-light from his
helmet: we stood in a group
while he waved it. A semaphore signal.</p>
<p>"<i>Grantline?</i>"</p>
<p>And the answer came. "<i>Yes. You,
Dean?</i>"</p>
<p>Their personal code. No doubt of
this—it was Grantline, who had seen
the <i>Planetara</i> fall and had come to help
us.</p>
<p>I stood then with my hand holding
Anita. And I whispered, "It's Grant<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[99]</SPAN></span>line!
We're safe, Anita, my darling!"</p>
<p>Death had been so close! Those horrible
last minutes on the <i>Planetara</i> had
shocked us, marked us.</p>
<p>We stood trembling. And Grantline
and his men came bounding up.</p>
<p>A helmeted figure touched me. I
saw through the helmet-pane the visage
of a stern-faced, square-jawed, youngish
man.</p>
<p>"Grantline? Johnny Grantline?"</p>
<p>"Yes," said his voice at my ear-grid.
"I'm Grantline. You're Haljan? Gregg
Haljan?"</p>
<p>They crowded around us. Gripped
us to hear our explanations.</p>
<p>Brigands! It was amazing to Johnny
Grantline. But the menace was over
now, over as soon as Grantline had realized
its existence. As though the wreck
of the <i>Planetara</i> were foreordained by
an all-wise Providence, the brigands'
adventure had come to tragedy.</p>
<p>We stood for a time discussing it.
Then I drew apart, leaving Snap with
Grantline. And Anita joined me. I
held her arm so that we had audiphone
contact.</p>
<p>"Anita, mine."</p>
<p>"Gregg, dear one."</p>
<p>Murmured nothings which mean so
much to lovers!</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">s</span> we stood in the fantastic gloom
of the Lunar desolation, with the
blessed Earth-light on us, I sent up a
prayer of thankfulness. Not that a
hundred millions of treasure were
saved. Not that the attack upon Grantline
had been averted. But only that
Anita was given back to me. In moments
of greatest emotion the human
mind individualizes. To me, there was
only Anita.</p>
<p>Life is very strange! The gate to
the shining garden of our love seemed
swinging wide to let us in. Yet I recall
that a vague fear still lay on me. A
premonition?</p>
<p>I felt a touch on my arm. A bloated
helmet visor was thrust near my own.
I saw Snap's face peering at me.</p>
<p>"Grantline thinks we should return
to the <i>Planetara</i>. Might find some of
them alive."</p>
<p>Grantline touched me. "It's only
humanity."</p>
<p>"Yes," I said.</p>
<p>We went back. Some ten of us—a
line of grotesque figures bounding
with slow, easy strides over the jagged,
rock-strewn plain. Our lights danced
before us.</p>
<p>The <i>Planetara</i> came at last into view.
My ship. Again that pang swept me as
I saw her. This, her last resting place.
She lay here in her open tomb, shattered,
broken, unbreathing. The lights
on her were extinguished. The Erentz
system had ceased to pulse—the heart
of the dying ship, for a while beating
faintly, but now at rest.</p>
<p>We left the two girls with some of
Grantline's men at the admission port.
Snap, Grantline and I, with three
others, went inside. There still seemed
to be air, but not enough so that we
dared remove our helmets.</p>
<p>It was dark inside the wrecked ship.
The corridors were black; the hull control-rooms
were dimly illumined with
Earth-light straggling through the
windows.</p>
<p>This littered tomb! Already cold
and silent with death. We stumbled
over a fallen figure. A member of the
crew.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">G</span><span class="upper">rantline</span> straightened from
examining him.</p>
<p>"Dead."</p>
<p>Earth-light fell on the horrible face.
Puffed flesh, bloated red from the blood
which had oozed from its pores in the
thinning air. I looked away.</p>
<p>We prowled further. Hahn lay dead
in the pump-room.</p>
<p>The body of Coniston should have
been near here. We did not see it.</p>
<p>We climbed up to the slanting littered
deck. The dome had not exploded,
but the air up here had almost
all hissed away.</p>
<p>Again Grantline touched me. "That
the turret?"</p>
<p>"Yes."<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[100]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>No wonder he asked! The wreckage
was all so formless.</p>
<p>We climbed after Snap into the
broken turret room. We passed the
body of that steward who just at the
end had appealed to me and I had left
dying. The legs of the forward look-out
still poked grotesquely up from
the wreckage of the observatory tower
where it lay smashed down against the
roof of the chart-room.</p>
<p>We shoved ourselves into the turret.
What was this? No bodies here! The
giant Miko was gone! The pool of his
blood lay congealed into a frozen dark
splotch on the metal grid.</p>
<p>And Moa was gone! They had not
been dead. Had dragged themselves
out of here, fighting desperately for
life. We would find them somewhere
around here.</p>
<p>But we did not. Nor Coniston. I recalled
what Anita had said: other suits
and helmets had been here in the nearby
chart-room. The brigands had
taken them, and food and water doubtless,
and escaped from the ship, following
us through the lower admission
ports only a few minutes after we had
gone out.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">W</span><span class="upper">e</span> made careful search of the
entire ship. Eight of the bodies
which should have been here were
missing: Miko, Moa, Coniston, and five
of the steward-crew.</p>
<p>We did not find them outside. They
were hiding near here, no doubt, more
willing to take their chances than to
yield now to us. But how, in all this
Lunar desolation, could we hope to
locate them?</p>
<p>"No use," said Grantline. "Let them
go. If they want death—well, they deserve
it."</p>
<p>But we were saved. Then, as I stood
there, realization leaped at me. Saved?
Were we not indeed fatuous fools?</p>
<p>In all these emotion-swept moments
since we had encountered Grantline,
memory of that brigand ship coming
from Mars had never once occurred to
Snap or me!</p>
<p>I told Grantline now. His eyes
through the visor stared at me blankly.</p>
<p>"What!"</p>
<p>I told him again. It would be here
in eight days. Fully manned and
armed.</p>
<p>"But Haljan, we have almost no
weapons! All my <i>Comet's</i> space was
taken with mining equipment and the
mechanisms for my camp. I can't signal
Earth! I was depending on the
<i>Planetara</i>!"</p>
<p>It surged upon us. The brigand menace
past? We were blindly congratulating
ourselves on our safety! But it
would be eight days or more before in
distant Ferrok-Shahn the non-arrival
of the <i>Planetara</i> would cause any real
comment. No one was searching for
us—no one was worried over us.</p>
<p>No wonder the crafty Miko was
willing to take his chances out here in
the Lunar wilds! His ship, his reinforcements,
his weapons were coming
rapidly!</p>
<p>And we were helpless. Almost unarmed.
Marooned here on the Moon
with our treasure!</p>
<div class="nanospace"> </div>
<div class="center">(<i>To be continued.</i>)</div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<div class="nanospace"> </div>
<div class="border3" style="width: 525px;">
<h2>ASTOUNDING STORIES</h2>
<h3><i>Appears on Newsstands</i></h3>
<h3>THE FIRST THURSDAY IN EACH MONTH.</h3></div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_A_1" id="Footnote_A_1"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_A_1"><span class="label">[A]</span></SPAN> The principle of this invisible cloak involves
the use of an electronized fabric. All
color is absorbed. The light rays reflected to
the eye of the observer thus show an image of
empty blackness. There is also created about
the cloak a magnetic field which by natural
laws bends the rays of light from objects behind
it. This principle of the natural bending of
light when passing through a magnetic field
was first recognized by Albert Einstein, a
scientist of the Twentieth century. In the
case of this invisible cloak, the bending light
rays, by making visible what was behind the
cloak's blackness, thus destroyed its solid
black outline and gave a pseudo-invisibility
which was fairly effective under favorable
conditions.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_B_2" id="Footnote_B_2"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_B_2"><span class="label">[B]</span></SPAN> An allusion to the use of the zed-ray light
for making spectro-photographs of what
might be behind obscuring rock masses, similar
to the old-style X-ray.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_C_3" id="Footnote_C_3"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_C_3"><span class="label">[C]</span></SPAN> About fifty miles.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_D_4" id="Footnote_D_4"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_D_4"><span class="label">[D]</span></SPAN>
An intricate system of insulation against extremes of temperature,
developed by the Erentz Kinetic Energy Corporation in the twenty-first
century. Within the hollow double shell of a shelter-wall, or an
explorer's helmet-suit, or a space-flyer's hull, an oscillating
semi-vacuum current was maintained--an extremely rarified air,
magnetically charged, and maintained in rapid oscillating motion. Across
this field the outer cold, or heat, as the case might be, could
penetrate only with slow radiation. This Erentz system gave the most
perfect temperature insulation known in its day. Without it,
interplanetary flight would have been impossible.</p>
<p>And it served a double purpose. Developed at first for temperature
insulation only, the Erentz system surprisingly brought to light one of
the most important discoveries made in the realm of physics of the
century. It was found that any flashing, oscillating current, whether
electronic, or the semi-vacuum of rarified air--or even a thin sheet of
whirling fluid--gave also a pressure-insulation. The kinetic energy of
the rapid movement was found to absorb within itself the latent energy
of the unequal pressure.</p>
<p>(The intricate postulates and mathematical
formulae necessary to demonstrate the operation
of the physical laws involved would be
out of place here.)</p>
<p>The <i>Planetara</i> was so equipped, against the
explosive tendency of its inner air-pressures
when flying in the near-vacuum of space. In
the case of Grantline's glassite shelters, the
latent energy of his room interior air pressure
went largely into a kinetic energy which in
practical effect resulted only in the slight acceleration
of the vacuum current, and thus
never reached the outer wall. The Erentz
engineers claimed for their system a pressure
absorption of 97.4%, leaving, in Grantline's
case, only 2.6% of room pressure to be held
by the building's aluminite bracers.</p>
<p>It may be interesting to note in this connection
that without the Erentz system as a
basis, the great sub-sea developments on
Earth and Mars of the twenty-first century
would also have been impossible. Equipped
with a fluid circulation device of the Erentz
principle within its double hull, the first submarine
was able to penetrate the great ocean
deeps, withstanding the tremendous ocean
pressures at depths of four thousand fathoms.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_E_5" id="Footnote_E_5"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_E_5"><span class="label">[E]</span></SPAN> Within the Grantline buildings it was
found more convenient to use a gravity
normal to Earth. This was maintained by
the wearing of metal-weighted shoes and
metal-loaded belt. The Moon-gravity is
normally approximately one-sixth the gravity
of Earth.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_F_6" id="Footnote_F_6"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_F_6"><span class="label">[F]</span></SPAN> The Gravely storage tanks—the power
used by the Grantline expedition—were
heavy and bulky affairs. Economy of space
on the Comet allowed but few of them.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_G_7" id="Footnote_G_7"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_G_7"><span class="label">[G]</span></SPAN> Electro-telescopes of most modern use
and power were too large and used too much
power to be available to Grantline.</p>
</div>
<hr />
<div class="image">
<ANTIMG src="images/i101.jpg" width-obs="525" height-obs="531" alt="" title="" /></div>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>He began to twist and turn, as though<br/> torn by some invisible force.</i></h3>
<h2 class="chapter3"><SPAN name="The_Soul-Snatcher" id="The_Soul-Snatcher"></SPAN>The Soul-Snatcher</h2>
<h2 class="chapter"><i>By Tom Curry</i></h2>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="sidenote">From twenty miles away stabbed the
"atom-filtering" rays to Allen Baker in
his cell in the death house.</div>
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> shrill voice of a woman<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[101]</SPAN></span>
stabbed the steady hum of the
many machines in the great,
semi-darkened laboratory. It
was the onslaught
of weak femininity
against the ebony
shadow of Jared,
the silent negro
servant of Professor
Ramsey Burr. Not many people
were able to get to the famous man
against his wishes; Jared obeyed orders
implicitly and was generally an
efficient barrier.</p>
<p>"I will see him, I will," screamed the
middle-aged woman.
"I'm Mrs.
Mary Baker, and
he—he—it's his
fault my son is
going to die. His
fault. <i>Professor! Professor Burr!</i>"</p>
<p>Jared was unable to keep her quiet.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[102]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>Coming in from the sunlight, her
eyes were not yet accustomed to the
strange, subdued haze of the laboratory,
an immense chamber crammed
full of equipment, the vista of which
seemed like an apartment in hell.
Bizarre shapes stood out from the mass
of impedimenta, great stills which rose
full two stories in height, dynamos, immense
tubes of colored liquids, a hundred
puzzles to the inexpert eye.</p>
<p>The small, plump figure of Mrs.
Baker was very out of place in this
setting. Her voice was poignant,
reedy. A look at her made it evident
that she was a conventional, good
woman. She had soft, cloudy golden
eyes and a pathetic mouth, and she
seemed on the point of tears.</p>
<p>"Madam, madam, de doctor is busy,"
whispered Jared, endeavoring to shoo
her out of the laboratory with his polite
hands. He was respectful, but firm.</p>
<p>She refused to obey. She stopped
when she was within a few feet of the
activity in the laboratory, and stared
with fear and horror at the center of
the room, and at its occupant, Professor
Burr, whom she had addressed
during her flurried entrance.</p>
<p>The professor's face, as he peered at
her, seemed like a disembodied stare,
for she could see only eyes behind a
mask of lavender gray glass eyeholes,
with its flapping ends of dirty, gray-white
cloth.</p>
<p>She drew in a deep breath—and
gasped, for the pungent fumes, acrid
and penetrating, of sulphuric and nitric
acids, stabbed her lungs. It was like
the breath of hell, to fit the simile, and
aptly Professor Burr seemed the devil
himself, manipulating the infernal machines.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">cting</span> swiftly, the tall figure
stepped over and threw two
switches in a single, sweeping movement.
The vermillion light which had
lived in a long row of tubes on a nearby
bench abruptly ceased to writhe like so
many tongues of flame, and the embers
of hell died out.</p>
<p>Then the professor flooded the room
in harsh gray-green light, and stopped
the high-pitched, humming whine of
his dynamos. A shadow picture writhing
on the wall, projected from a lead-glass
barrel, disappeared suddenly, the
great color filters and other machines
lost their semblance of horrible life,
and a regretful sigh seemed to come
from the metal creatures as they gave
up the ghost.</p>
<p>To the woman, it had been entering
the abode of fear. She could not restrain
her shudders. But she bravely
confronted the tall figure of Professor
Burr, as he came forth to greet her.</p>
<p>He was extremely tall and attenuated,
with a red, bony mask of a face
pointed at the chin by a sharp little
goatee. Feathery blond hair, silvered
and awry, covered his great head.</p>
<p>"Madam," said Burr in a gentle, disarmingly
quiet voice, "your manner of
entrance might have cost you your life.
Luckily I was able to deflect the rays
from your person, else you might not
now be able to voice your complaint—for
such seems to be your purpose in
coming here." He turned to Jared,
who was standing close by. "Very
well, Jared. You may go. After this,
it will be as well to throw the bolts,
though in this case I am quite willing
to see the visitor."</p>
<p>Jared slid away, leaving the plump
little woman to confront the famous
scientist.</p>
<p>For a moment, Mrs. Baker stared
into the pale gray eyes, the pupils of
which seemed black as coal by contrast.
Some, his bitter enemies, claimed that
Professor Ramsey Burr looked cold
and bleak as an iceberg, others that he
had a baleful glare. His mouth was
grim and determined.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">Y</span><span class="upper">et,</span> with her woman's eyes, Mrs.
Baker, looking at the professor's
bony mask of a face, with the high-bridged,
intrepid nose, the passionless
gray eyes, thought that Ramsey Burr
would be handsome, if a little less cadaverous
and more human.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[103]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"The experiment which you ruined
by your untimely entrance," continued
the professor, "was not a safe one."</p>
<p>His long white hand waved toward
the bunched apparatus, but to her to
the room seemed all glittering metal
coils of snakelike wire, ruddy copper,
dull lead, and tubes of all shapes. Hell
cauldrons of unknown chemicals
seethed and slowly bubbled, beetle-black
bakelite fixtures reflected the
hideous light.</p>
<p>"Oh," she cried, clasping her hands
as though she addressed him in prayer,
"forget your science, Professor Burr,
and be a man. Help me. Three days
from now my boy, my son, whom I love
above all the world, is to die."</p>
<p>"Three days is a long time," said
Professor Burr calmly. "Do not lose
hope: I have no intention of allowing
your son, Allen Baker, to pay the price
for a deed of mine. I freely confess
it was I who was responsible for the
death of—what was the person's name?—Smith,
I believe."</p>
<p>"It was you who made Allen get poor
Mr. Smith to agree to the experiments
which killed him, and which the world
blamed on my son," she said. "They
called it the deed of a scientific fiend,
Professor Burr, and perhaps they are
right. But Allen is innocent."</p>
<p>"Be quiet," ordered Burr, raising his
hand. "Remember, madam, your son
Allen is only a commonplace medical
man, and while I taught him a little
from my vast store of knowledge, he
was ignorant and of much less value
to science and humanity than myself.
Do you not understand, can you not
comprehend, also, that the man Smith
was a martyr to science? He was no
loss to mankind, and only sentimentalists
could have blamed anyone for his
death. I should have succeeded in the
interchange of atoms which we were
working on, and Smith would at this
moment be hailed as the first man to
travel through space in invisible form,
projected on radio waves, had it not
been for the fact that the alloy which
conducts the three types of sinusoidal
failed me and burned out. Yes, it was
an error in calculation, and Smith
would now be called the Lindbergh of
the Atom but for that. Yet Smith has
not died in vain, for I have finally corrected
this error—science is but trial
and correction of error—and all will
be well."</p>
<p>"But Allen—Allen must not die at
all!" she cried. "For weeks he has
been in the death house: it is killing
me. The Governor refuses him a pardon,
nor will he commute my son's
sentence. In three days he is to die
in the electric chair, for a crime which
you admit you alone are responsible
for. Yet you remain in your laboratory,
immersed in your experiments,
and do nothing, nothing!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> tears came now, and she
sobbed hysterically. It seemed
that she was making an appeal to someone
in whom she had only a forlorn
hope.</p>
<p>"Nothing?" repeated Burr, pursing
his thin lips. "Nothing? Madam, I
have done everything. I have, as I
have told you, perfected the experiment.
It is successful. Your son has
not suffered in vain, and Smith's name
will go down with the rest of science's
martyrs as one who died for the sake
of humanity. But if you wish to save
your son, you must be calm. You must
listen to what I have to say, and you
must not fail to carry out my instructions
to the letter. I am ready now."</p>
<p>Light, the light of hope, sprang in
the mother's eyes. She grasped his arm
and stared at him with shining face,
through tear-dipped eyelashes.</p>
<p>"Do—do you mean it? Can you save
him? After the Governor has refused
me? What can you do? No influence
will snatch Allen from the jaws of the
law: the public is greatly excited and
very hostile toward him."</p>
<p>A quiet smile played at the corners
of Burr's thin lips.</p>
<p>"Come," he said. "Place this cloak
about you. Allen wore it when he assisted
me."<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[104]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>The professor replaced his own mask
and conducted the woman into the interior
of the laboratory.</p>
<p>"I will show you," said Professor
Burr.</p>
<p>She saw before her now, on long
metal shelves which appeared to be
delicately poised on fine scales whose
balance was registered by hair-line indicators,
two small metal cages.</p>
<p>Professor Burr stepped over to a
row of common cages set along the
wall. There was a small menagerie
there, guinea pigs—the martyrs of the
animal kingdom—rabbits, monkeys, and
some cats.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> man of science reached in and
dragged out a mewing cat, placing
it in the right-hand cage on the strange
table. He then obtained a small
monkey and put this animal in the left-hand
cage, beside the cat. The cat, on
the right, squatted on its haunches,
mewing in pique and looking up at its
tormentor. The monkey, after a quick
look around, began to investigate the
upper reaches of its new cage.</p>
<p>Over each of the animals was suspended
a fine, curious metallic armament.
For several minutes, while the
woman, puzzled at how this demonstration
was to affect the rescue of her condemned
son, waited impatiently, the
professor deftly worked at the apparatus,
connecting wires here and there.</p>
<p>"I am ready now," said Burr. "Watch
the two animals carefully."</p>
<p>"Yes, yes," she replied, faintly, for
she was half afraid.</p>
<p>The great scientist was stooping
over, looking at the balances of the indicators
through microscopes.</p>
<p>She saw him reach for his switches,
and then a brusk order caused her to
turn her eyes back to the animals, the
cat in the right-hand cage, the monkey
at the left.</p>
<p>Both animals screamed in fear, and
a sympathetic chorus sounded from the
menagerie, as a long purple spark
danced from one gray metal pole to the
other, over the cages on the table.</p>
<p>At first, Mrs. Baker noticed no
change. The spark had died, the professor's
voice, unhurried, grave, broke
the silence.</p>
<p>"The first part of the experiment is
over," he said. "The ego—"</p>
<p>"Oh, heavens!" cried the woman.
"You've driven the poor creatures
mad!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">he</span> indicated the cat. That animal
was clawing at the top bars of its
cage, uttering a bizarre, chattering
sound, somewhat like a monkey. The
cat hung from the bars, swinging itself
back and forth as on a trapeze, then
reached up and hung by its hind
claws.</p>
<p>As for the monkey, it was squatting
on the floor of its cage, and it made a
strange sound in its throat, almost a
mew, and it hissed several times at the
professor.</p>
<p>"They are not mad," said Burr. "As
I was explaining to you, I have finished
the first portion of the experiment. The
ego, or personality of one animal has
been taken out and put into the other."</p>
<p>She was unable to speak. He had
mentioned madness: was he, Professor
Ramsey Burr, crazy? It was likely
enough. Yet—yet the whole thing, in
these surroundings, seemed plausible.
As she hesitated about speaking, watching
with fascinated eyes the out-of-character
behavior of the two beasts,
Burr went on.</p>
<p>"The second part follows at once.
Now that the two egos have interchanged,
I will shift the bodies. When
it is completed, the monkey will have
taken the place of the cat, and vice
versa. Watch."</p>
<p>He was busy for some time with his
levers, and the smell of ozone reached
Mrs. Baker's nostrils as she stared with
horrified eyes at the animals.</p>
<p>She blinked. The sparks crackled
madly, the monkey mewed, the cat
chattered.</p>
<p>Were her eyes going back on her?
She could see neither animal distinctly:
they seemed to be shaking in some<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[105]</SPAN></span>
cosmic disturbance, and were but blurs.
This illusion—for to her, it seemed it
must be optical—persisted, grew worse,
until the quaking forms of the two unfortunate
creatures were like so much
ectoplasm in swift motion, ghosts
whirling about in a dark room.</p>
<p>Yet she could see the cages quite
distinctly, and the table and even the
indicators of the scales. She closed
her eyes for a moment. The acrid odors
penetrated to her lungs, and she
coughed, opening her eyes.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">N</span><span class="upper">ow</span> she could see clearly again.
Yes, she could see a monkey, and
it was climbing, quite naturally about
its cage; it was excited, but a monkey.
And the cat, while protesting mightily,
acted like a cat.</p>
<p>Then she gasped. Had her mind, in
the excitement, betrayed her? She
looked at Professor Burr. On his lean
face there was a smile of triumph, and
he seemed to be awaiting her applause.</p>
<p>She looked again at the two cages.
Surely, at first the cat had been in
the right-hand cage, and the monkey
in the left! And now, the monkey was
in the place where the cat had been
and the cat had been shifted to the
left-hand cage.</p>
<p>"So it was with Smith, when the alloys
burned out," said Burr. "It is impossible
to extract the ego or dissolve
the atoms and translate them into radio
waves unless there is a connection
with some other ego and body, for in
such a case the translated soul and
body would have no place to go.
Luckily, for you, madam, it was the
man Smith who was killed when the
alloys failed me. It might have been
Allen, for he was the second pole of
the connection."</p>
<p>"But," she began faintly, "how can
this mad experiment have anything to
do with saving my boy?"</p>
<p>He waved impatiently at her evident
denseness. "Do you not understand?
It is so I will save Allen, your son. I
shall first switch our egos, or souls, as
you say. Then switch the bodies. It
must always take this sequence; why,
I have not ascertained. But it always
works thus."</p>
<p>Mrs. Baker was terrified. What she
had just seen, smacked of the blackest
magic—yet a woman in her position
must grasp at straws. The world
blamed her son for the murder of
Smith, a man Professor Burr had made
use of as he might a guinea pig, and
Allen must be snatched from the death
house.</p>
<p>"Do—do you mean you can bring Allen
from the prison here—just by
throwing those switches?" she asked.</p>
<p>"That is it. But there is more to it
than that, for it is not magic, madam;
it is science, you understand, and there
must be some physical connection. But
with your help, that can easily be
made."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">P</span><span class="upper">rofessor Ramsey Burr,</span>
she knew, was the greatest electrical
engineer the world had ever known.
And he stood high as a physicist.
Nothing hindered him in the pursuit of
knowledge, they said. He knew no
fear, and he lived on an intellectual
promontory. He was so great that he
almost lost sight of himself. To such
a man, nothing was impossible. Hope,
wild hope, sprang in Mary Baker's
heart, and she grasped the bony hand
of the professor and kissed it.</p>
<p>"Oh, I believe, I believe," she cried.
"You can do it. You can save Allen.
I will do anything, anything you tell
me to."</p>
<p>"Very well. You visit your son daily
at the death house, do you not?"</p>
<p>She nodded; a shiver of remembrance
of that dread spot passed through her.</p>
<p>"Then you will tell him the plan and
let him agree to see me the night preceding
the electrocution. I will give
him final instructions as to the exchange
of bodies. When my life spirit,
or ego, is confined in your son's body
in the death house, Allen will be able
to perform the feat of changing the
bodies, and your son's flesh will join
his soul, which will have been tempo<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[106]</SPAN></span>rarily
inhabiting my own shell. Do
you see? When they find me in the
cell where they suppose your son to be,
they will be unable to explain the phenomenon;
they can do nothing but release
me. Your son will go here, and
can be whisked away to a safe place of
concealment."</p>
<p>"Yes, yes. What am I to do besides
this?"</p>
<p>Professor Burr pulled out a drawer
near at hand, and from it extracted a
folded garment of thin, shiny material.</p>
<p>"This is metal cloth coated with the
new alloy," he said, in a matter of fact
tone. He rummaged further, saying as
he did so, "I expected you would be
here to see me, and I have been getting
ready for your visit. All is prepared,
save a few odds and ends which I can
easily clean up in the next two days.
Here are four cups which Allen must
place under each leg of his bed, and this
delicate little director coil you must
take especial pains with. It is to be
slipped under your son's tongue at the
time appointed."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">S</span><span class="upper">he</span> was staring at him still, half in
fear, half in wonder, yet she could
not feel any doubt of the man's miraculous
powers. Somehow, while he talked
to her and rested those cold eyes upon
her, she was under the spell of the
great scientist. Her son, before the
trouble into which he had been dragged
by the professor, had often hinted at
the abilities of Ramsey Burr, given her
the idea that his employer was practically
a necromancer, yet a magician
whose advanced scientific knowledge
was correct and explainable in the
light of reason.</p>
<p>Yes, Allen had talked to her often
when he was at home, resting from his
labors with Professor Burr. He had
spoken of the new electricity discovered
by the famous man, and also told
his mother that Burr had found a
method of separating atoms and then
transforming them into a form of
radio-electricity so that they could be
sent in radio waves, to designated
points. And she now remembered—the
swift trial and conviction of Allen on
the charge of murder had occupied her
so deeply that she had forgotten all
else for the time being—that her son
had informed her quite seriously that
Professor Ramsey Burr would soon be
able to transport human beings by
radio.</p>
<p>"Neither of us will be injured in any
way by the change," said Burr calmly.
"It is possible for me now to break up
human flesh, send the atoms by radio-electricity,
and reassemble them in
their proper form by these special
transformers and atom filters."</p>
<p>Mrs. Baker took all the apparatus
presented her by the professor. She
ventured the thought that it might be
better to perform the experiment at
once, instead of waiting until the last
minute, but this Professor Burr waved
aside as impossible. He needed the
extra time, he said, and there was no
hurry.</p>
<p>She glanced about the room, and her
eye took in the giant switches of copper
with their black handles; there
were others of a gray-green metal she
did not recognize. Many dials and
meters, strange to her, confronted the
little woman. These things, she felt
with a rush of gratitude toward the
inanimate objects, would help to save
her son, so they interested her and she
began to feel kindly toward the great
machines.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">W</span><span class="upper">ould</span> Professor Burr be able
to save Allen as he claimed?
Yes, she thought, he could. She
would make Allen consent to the trial
of it, even though her son had cursed
the scientist and cried he would never
speak to Ramsey Burr again.</p>
<p>She was escorted from the home of
the professor by Jared, and going out
into the bright, sunlit street, blinked as
her eyes adjusted themselves to the
daylight after the queer light of the
laboratory. In a bundle she had a
strange suit and the cups; her purse
held the tiny coil, wrapped in cotton.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[107]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>How could she get the authorities to
consent to her son having the suit?
The cups and the coil she might slip
to him herself. She decided that a
mother would be allowed to give her
son new underwear. Yes, she would
say it was that.</p>
<p>She started at once for the prison.
Professor Burr's laboratory was but
twenty miles from the cell where her
son was incarcerated.</p>
<p>As she rode on the train, seeing
people in everyday attire, commonplace
occurrences going on about her,
the spell of Professor Burr faded, and
cold reason stared her in the face. Was
it nonsense, this idea of transporting
bodies through the air, in invisible
waves? Yet, she was old-fashioned;
the age of miracles had not passed for
her. Radio, in which pictures and
voices could be sent on wireless waves,
was unexplainable to her. Perhaps—</p>
<p>She sighed, and shook her head. It
was hard to believe. It was also hard
to believe that her son was in deadly
peril, condemned to death as a "scientific
fiend."</p>
<p>Here was her station. A taxi took
her to the prison, and after a talk with
the warden, finally she stood there, before
the screen through which she
could talk to Allen, her son.</p>
<p>"Mother!"</p>
<p>Her heart lifted, melted within her.
It was always thus when he spoke.
"Allen," she whispered softly.</p>
<p>They were allowed to talk undisturbed.</p>
<p>"Professor Burr wishes to help you,"
she said, in a low voice.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">er</span> son, Allen Baker, M. D.,
turned eyes of misery upon her.
His ruddy hair was awry. This young
man was imaginative and could therefore
suffer deeply. He had the gift of
turning platitudes into puzzles, and his
hazel eyes were lit with an elfin quality,
which, if possible, endeared him the
more to his mother. All his life he had
been the greatest thing in the world to
this woman. To see him in such
straits tore her very heart. When he
had been a little boy, she had been able
to make joy appear in those eyes by
a word and a pat; now that he was a
man, the matter was more difficult, but
she had always done her best.</p>
<p>"I cannot allow Professor Burr to
do anything for me," he said dully. "It
is his fault that I am here."</p>
<p>"But Allen, you must listen, listen
carefully. Professor Burr can save
you. He says it was all a mistake, the
alloy was wrong. He has not come
forward before, because he knew he
would be able to iron out the trouble
if he had time, and thus snatch you
from this terrible place."</p>
<p>She put as much confidence into her
voice as she could. She must, to enhearten
her son. Anything to replace
that look of suffering with one of hope.
She would believe, she did believe.
The bars, the great masses of stone
which enclosed her son would be as
nothing. He would pass through them,
unseen, unheard.</p>
<p>For a time, Allen spoke bitterly of
Ramsey Burr, but his mother pleaded
with him, telling him it was his only
chance, and that the deviltry Allen
suspected was imaginary.</p>
<p>"He—he killed Smith in such an
experiment," said Allen. "I took the
blame, as you know, though I only followed
his instructions. But you say
he claims to have found the correct alloys?"</p>
<p>"Yes. And this suit, you must put it
on. But Professor Burr himself will
be here to see you day after to-morrow,
the day preceding the—the—" She bit
her lip, and got out the dreaded word,
"the electrocution. But there won't be
any electrocution, Allen; no, there cannot
be. You will be safe, safe in my
arms." She had to fight now to hold
her belief in the miracle which Burr
had promised. The solid steel and
stone dismayed her brain.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> new alloy seemed to interest
Allen Baker. His mother told him
of the exchange of the monkey and the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[108]</SPAN></span>
cat, and he nodded excitedly, growing
more and more restive, and his eyes began
to shine with hope and curiosity.</p>
<p>"I have told the warden about the
suit, saying it was something I made
for you myself," she said, in a low
voice. "You must pretend the coil and
the cups are things you desire for your
own amusement. You know, they have
allowed you a great deal of latitude,
since you are educated and need diversion."</p>
<p>"Yes, yes. There may be some difficulty,
but I will overcome that. Tell
Burr to come. I'll talk with him and
he can instruct me in the final details.
It is better than waiting here like a rat
in a trap. I have been afraid of going
mad, mother, but this buoys me up."</p>
<p>He smiled at her, and her heart sang
in the joy of relief.</p>
<p>How did the intervening days pass?
Mrs. Baker could not sleep, could
scarcely eat, she could do nothing but
wait, wait, wait. She watched the
meeting of her son and Ramsey Burr,
on the day preceding the date set for
the execution.</p>
<p>"Well, Baker," said Burr nonchalantly,
nodding to his former assistant.
"How are you?"</p>
<p>"You see how I am," said Allen,
coldly.</p>
<p>"Yes, yes. Well, listen to what I
have to say and note it carefully. There
must be no slip. You have the suit, the
cups and the director coil? You must
keep the suit on, the cups go under the
legs of the cot you lie on. The director
under your tongue."</p>
<p>The professor spoke further with
Allen, instructing him in scientific
terms which the woman scarcely comprehended.</p>
<p>"To-night, then at eleven-thirty,"
said Burr, finally. "Be ready."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">llen</span> nodded. Mrs. Baker accompanied
Burr from the prison.</p>
<p>"You—you will let me be with you?"
she begged.</p>
<p>"It is hardly necessary," said the
professor.</p>
<p>"But I must. I must see Allen the
moment he is free, to make sure
he is all right. Then, I want to be
able to take him away. I have a place
in which we can hide, and as soon as he
is rescued he must be taken out of
sight."</p>
<p>"Very well," said Burr, shrugging.
"It is immaterial to me, so long as you
do not interfere with the course of the
experiment. You must sit perfectly
still, you must not speak until Allen
stands before you and addresses you."</p>
<p>"Yes, I will obey you," she promised.</p>
<p>Mrs. Baker watched Professor Ramsey
Burr eat his supper. Burr himself
was not in the least perturbed; it was
wonderful, she thought, that he could
be so calm. To her, it was the great
moment, the moment when her son
would be saved from the jaws of death.</p>
<p>Jared carried a comfortable chair
into the laboratory and she sat in it,
quiet as a mouse, in one corner of the
room.</p>
<p>It was nine o'clock, and Professor
Burr was busy with his preparations.
She knew he had been working steadily
for the past few days. She gripped
the arms of her chair, and her heart
burned within her.</p>
<p>The professor was making sure of
his apparatus. He tested this bulb and
that, and carefully inspected the curious
oscillating platform, over which
was suspended a thickly bunched group
of gray-green wire, which was seemingly
an antenna. The numerous indicators
and implements seemed to be
satisfactory, for at quarter after eleven
Burr gave an exclamation of pleasure
and nodded to himself.</p>
<p>Burr seemed to have forgotten the
woman. He spoke aloud occasionally,
but not to her, as he drew forth a suit
made of the same metal cloth as Allen
must have on at this moment.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> tension was terrific, terrific
for the mother, who was awaiting
the culmination of the experiment
which would rescue her son from the
electric chair—or would it fail? She<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[109]</SPAN></span>
shuddered. What if Burr were mad?</p>
<p>But look at him, she was sure he was
sane, as sane as she was.</p>
<p>"He will succeed," she murmured,
digging her nails into the palms of her
hands. "I <i>know</i> he will."</p>
<p>She pushed aside the picture of
what would happen on the morrow, but
a few hours distant, when Allen, her
son, was due to be led to a legal death
in the electric chair.</p>
<p>Professor Burr placed the shiny suit
upon his lank form, and she saw him
put a duplicate coil, the same sort of
small machine which Allen possessed,
under his tongue.</p>
<p>The Mephistophelian figure consulted
a matter-of-fact watch; at that
moment, Mrs. Baker heard, above the
hum of the myriad machines in the
laboratory, the slow chiming of a clock.
It was the moment set for the deed.</p>
<p>Then, she feared the professor was
insane, for he suddenly leaped to the
high bench of the table on which stood
one of the oscillating platforms.</p>
<p>Wires led out from this, and Burr sat
gently upon it, a strange figure in the
subdued light.</p>
<p>Professor Burr, however, she soon
saw, was not insane. No, this was part
of it. He was reaching for switches
near at hand, and bulbs began to glow
with unpleasant light, needles on indicators
swung madly, and at last, Professor
Burr kicked over a giant switch,
which seemed to be the final movement.</p>
<p>For several seconds the professor did
not move. Then his body grew rigid,
and he twisted a few times. His face,
though not drawn in pain, yet twitched
galvanically, as though actuated by
slight jabs of electricity.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> many tubes fluoresced, flared
up in pulsing waves of violet and
pink: there were gray bars of invisibility
or areas of air in which nothing
visible showed. There came the faint,
crackling hum of machinery rather like
a swarm of wasps in anger. Blue and
gray thread of fire spat across the antenna.
The odor of ozone came to Mrs.
Baker's nostrils, and the acid odors
burned her lungs.</p>
<p>She was staring at him, staring at
the professor's face. She half rose
from her chair, and uttered a little cry.</p>
<p>The eyes had changed, no longer
were they cold, impersonal, the eyes of
a man who prided himself on the fact
that he kept his arteries soft and his
heart hard; they were loving, soft eyes.</p>
<p>"Allen," she cried.</p>
<p>Yes, without doubt, the eyes of her
son were looking at her out of the body
of Professor Ramsey Burr.</p>
<p>"Mother," he said gently. "Don't be
alarmed. It is successful. I am here,
in Professor Burr's body."</p>
<p>"Yes," she cried, hysterically.
It was too weird to believe. It seemed
dim to her, unearthly.</p>
<p>"Are you all right, darling?" she
asked timidly.</p>
<p>"Yes. I felt nothing beyond a momentary
giddy spell, a bit of nausea
and mental stiffness. It was strange,
and I have a slight headache. However,
all is well."</p>
<p>He grinned at her, laughed with the
voice which was not his, yet which she
recognized as directed by her son's
spirit. The laugh was cracked and unlike
Allen's whole-hearted mirth, yet
she smiled in sympathy.</p>
<p>"Yes, the first part is a success," said
the man. "Our egos have interchanged.
Soon, our bodies will undergo the
transformation, and then I must keep
under cover. I dislike Burr—yet he is
a great man. He has saved me. I suppose
the slight headache which I feel
is one bequeathed me by Burr. I hope
he inherits my shivers and terrors and
the neuralgia for the time being, so
he will get some idea of what I have
undergone."</p>
<p>He had got down from the oscillating
platform, the spirit of her son in Ramsey's
body.</p>
<p>"What—what are you doing now?"
she asked.</p>
<p>"I must carry out the rest of it myself,"
he said. "Burr directed me when
we talked yesterday. It is more dif<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[110]</SPAN></span>ficult
when one subject is out of the
laboratory, and the tubes must be
checked."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> went carefully about his work,
and she saw him replacing four
of the tubes with others, new ones,
which were ready at hand. Though it
was the body of Ramsey Burr, the
movements were different from the
slow, precise work of the professor,
and more and more, she realized that
her son inhabited the shell before her.</p>
<p>For a moment, the mother thought
of attempting to dissuade her son
from making the final change; was it
not better thus, than to chance the disintegration
of the bodies? Suppose
something went wrong, and the exchange
did not take place, and her son,
that is, his spirit, went back to the
death house?</p>
<p>Midnight struck as he worked feverishly
at the apparatus, the long face
corrugated as he checked the dials and
tubes. He worked swiftly, but evidently
was following a procedure which he
had committed to memory, for he was
forced to pause often to make sure of
himself.</p>
<p>"Everything is O. K.," said the
strange voice at last. He consulted his
watch. "Twelve-thirty," he said.</p>
<p>She bit her lip in terror, as he cried,
"Now!" and sprang to the table to take
his place on the metallic platform,
which oscillated to and fro under his
weight. The delicate grayish metal
antenna, which, she knew, would form
a glittering halo of blue and gray
threads of fire, rested quiescent above
his head.</p>
<p>"This is the last thing," he said calmly,
as he reached for the big ebony
handled switch. "I'll be myself in a
few minutes, mother."</p>
<p>"Yes, son, yes."</p>
<p>The switch connected, and Allen
Baker, in the form of Ramsey Burr,
suddenly cried out in pain. His mother
leaped up to run to his side, but he
waved her away. She stood, wringing
her hands, as he began to twist and
turn, as though torn by some invisible
force. Eery screams came from the
throat of the man on the platform, and
Mrs. Baker's cries of sympathy mingled
with them.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> mighty motors hummed in a
high-pitched, unnatural whine,
and suddenly Mrs. Baker saw the tortured
face before her grow dim. The
countenance of the professor seemed
to melt, and then there came a dull,
muffled thud, a burst of white-blue
flame, the odor of burning rubber and
the tinkle of broken glass.</p>
<p>Back to the face came the clarity
of outline, and still it was Professor
Ramsey Burr's body she stared at.</p>
<p>Her son, in the professor's shape,
climbed from the platform, and looked
about him as though dazed. An acrid
smoke filled the room, and burning insulation
assailed the nostrils.</p>
<p>Desperately, without looking at her,
his lips set in a determined line, the
man went hurriedly over the apparatus
again.</p>
<p>"Have I forgotten, did I do anything
wrong?" she heard his anguished cry.</p>
<p>Two tubes were burned out, and
these he replaced as swiftly as possible.
But he was forced to go all over the
wiring, and cut out whatever had been
short-circuited so that it could be
hooked up anew with uninjured wire.</p>
<p>Before he was ready to resume his
seat on the platform, after half an hour
of feverish haste, a knock came on the
door.</p>
<p>The person outside was imperative,
and Mrs. Baker ran over and opened
the portal. Jared, the whites of his
eyes shining in the dim light, stood
there. "De professah—tell him dat de
wahden wishes to talk with him. It
is very important, ma'am."</p>
<p>The body of Burr, inhabited by
Allen's soul, pushed by her, and she
followed falteringly, wringing her
hands. She saw the tall figure snatch
at the receiver and listen.</p>
<p>"Oh, God," he cried.</p>
<p>At last, he put the receiver back on<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[111]</SPAN></span>
the hook, automatically, and sank down
in a chair, his face in his hands.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">M</span><span class="upper">rs. Baker</span> went to him quickly.
"What is it, Allen?" she cried.</p>
<p>"Mother," he said hoarsely, "it was
the warden of the prison. He told me
that Allen Baker had gone temporarily
insane, and claimed to be Professor
Ramsey Burr in my body."</p>
<p>"But—but what is the matter?" she
asked. "Cannot you finish the experiment,
Allen? Can't you change the
two bodies now?"</p>
<p>He shook his head. "Mother—they
electrocuted Ramsey Burr in my body
at twelve forty-five to-night!"</p>
<p>She screamed. She was faint, but
she controlled herself with a great
effort.</p>
<p>"But the electrocution was not to
be until morning," she said.</p>
<p>Allen shook his head. "They are
allowed a certain latitude, about twelve
hours," he said. "Burr protested up to
the last moment, and begged for time."</p>
<p>"Then—then they must have come
for him and dragged him forth to die
in the electric chair while you were
attempting the second part of the
change," she said.</p>
<p>"Yes. That was why it failed. That's
why the tubes and wires burned out
and why we couldn't exchange bodies.
It began to succeed, then I could feel
something terrible had happened. It
was impossible to complete the Beta
circuit, which short-circuited. They
took him from the cell, do you see,
while I was starting the exchange of
the atoms."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">F</span><span class="upper">or</span> a time, the mother and her boy
sat staring at one another. She
saw the tall, eccentric figure of Ramsey
Burr before her, yet she saw also the
soul of her son within that form. The
eyes were Allen's, the voice was soft
and loving, and his spirit was with her.</p>
<p>"Come, Allen, my son," she said
softly.</p>
<p>"Burr paid the price," said Allen,
shaking his head. "He became a martyr
to science."</p>
<p>The world has wondered why Professor
Ramsey Burr, so much in the
headlines as a great scientist, suddenly
gave up all his experiments and took
up the practice of medicine.</p>
<p>Now that the public furor and indignation
over the death of the man
Smith has died down, sentimentalists
believe that Ramsey Burr has reformed
and changed his icy nature, for he
manifests great affection and care for
Mrs. Mary Baker, the mother of the
electrocuted man who had been his
assistant.</p>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<div class="border3" style="width: 525px;">
<h3>BY NO MEANS</h3>
<h4><i>Miss the Opening Installment of<br/>
the Extraordinary Four-Part Novel</i></h4>
<h2>MURDER MADNESS</h2>
<h3><i>By Murray Leinster</i></h3>
<h2><i>Starting In Our Next Issue</i></h2></div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<hr />
<h2 class="chapter3"><SPAN name="The_Ray_of_Madness" id="The_Ray_of_Madness"></SPAN>The Ray of Madness</h2>
<h2 class="chapter"><i>By Captain S. P. Meek</i></h2>
<div class="image">
<ANTIMG src="images/i112.jpg" width-obs="472" height-obs="575" alt="" title="" /></div>
<h3 class="chapter2"><i>"That's the one," he exclaimed.<br/> "Hold the glass there for a moment."</i></h3>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="sidenote">Dr. Bird discovers a dastardly plot,
amazing in its mechanical ingenuity, behind
the apparently trivial eye trouble of
the President.</div>
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">knock</span> sounded at the door<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[112]</SPAN></span>
of Dr. Bird's private laboratory
in the Bureau of Standards.
The famous scientist
paid no attention to the interruption
but bent his head
lower over the
spectroscope with
which he was
working. The
knock was repeated
with a quality of quiet insistence
upon recognition. The Doctor smothered
an exclamation of impatience and
strode over to the door and threw it
open to the knocker.</p>
<p>"Oh, hello,
Carnes," he exclaimed
as he recognized
his visitor.
"Come in
and sit down and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[113]</SPAN></span>
keep your mouth shut for a few minutes.
I am busy just now but I'll be at
liberty in a little while."</p>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="image">
<ANTIMG src="images/i113.jpg" width-obs="514" height-obs="580" alt="" title="" /></div>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<p>"There's no hurry, Doctor," replied
Operative Carnes of the United States
Secret Service as he entered the room
and sat on the edge of the Doctor's
desk. "I haven't got a case up my
sleeve this time; I just came in for a
little chat."</p>
<p>"All right, glad to see you. Read
that latest volume of the <i>Zeitschrift</i>
for a while. That article of Von
Beyer's has got me guessing, all right."</p>
<p>Carnes picked up the indicated volume
and settled himself to read. The
Doctor bent over his apparatus. Time
and again he made minute adjustments
and gave vent to muttered exclamations
of annoyance at the results he obtained.
Half an hour later he rose
from his chair with a sigh and turned
to his visitor.</p>
<p>"What do you think of Von Beyer's
alleged discovery?" he asked the operative.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">t's</span> too deep for me, Doctor," replied
the operative. "All that I
can make out of it is that he claims to
have discovered a new element named
'lunium,' but hasn't been able to isolate
it yet. Is there anything remarkable
about that? It seems to me that I have
read of other new elements being discovered
from time to time."</p>
<p>"There is nothing remarkable about
the discovery of a new element by the
spectroscopic method," replied Dr.
Bird. "We know from Mendeleff's
table that there are a number of elements
which we have not discovered as
yet, and several of the ones we know
were first detected by the spectroscope.
The thing which puzzles me is that so
brilliant a man as Von Beyer claims
to have discovered it in the spectra of
the moon. His name, lunium, is taken
from Luna, the moon."</p>
<p>"Why not the moon? Haven't several
elements been first discovered in
the spectra of stars?"</p>
<p>"Certainly. The classic example is
Lockyer's discovery of an orange line
in the spectra of the sun in 1868. No
known terrestrial element gave such a
line and he named the new element
which he deduced helium, from Helos,
the sun. The element helium was first
isolated by Ramsey some twenty-seven
years later. Other elements have been
found in the spectra of stars, but the
point I am making is that the sun and
the stars are incandescent bodies and
could be logically expected to show the
characteristic lines of their constituent
elements in their spectra. But the
moon is a cold body without an atmosphere
and is visible only by reflected
light. The element, lunium, may exist
in the moon, but the manifestations
which Von Beyer has observed must
be, not from the moon, but from the
source of the reflected light which he
spectro-analyzed."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">Y</span><span class="upper">ou</span> are over my depth, Doctor."</p>
<p>"I'm over my own. I have
tried to follow Von Beyer's reasoning
and I have tried to check his findings.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[114]</SPAN></span>
Twice this evening I thought that I
caught a momentary glimpse on the
screen of my fluoroscope of the ultra-violet
line which he reports as characteristic
of lunium, but I am not certain.
I haven't been able to photograph
it yet. He notes in his article that the
line seems to be quite impermanent and
fades so rapidly that an accurate measurement
of its wave-length is almost
impossible. However, let's drop the
subject. How do you like your new
assignment?"</p>
<p>"Oh, it's all right. I would rather be
back on my old work."</p>
<p>"I haven't seen you since you were
assigned to the Presidential detail. I
suppose that you fellows are pretty
busy getting ready for Premier McDougal's
visit?"</p>
<p>"I doubt if he will come," replied
Carnes soberly. "Things are not exactly
propitious for a visit of that sort
just now."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">D</span><span class="upper">r. Bird</span> sat back in his chair in
surprise.</p>
<p>"I thought that the whole thing is
arranged. The press seems to think
so, at any rate."</p>
<p>"Everything is arranged, but arrangements
may be cancelled. I
wouldn't be surprised to hear that they
were."</p>
<p>"Carnes," replied Dr. Bird gravely,
"you have either said too much or too
little. There is something more to this
than appears on the surface. If it is
none of my business, don't hesitate to
tell me so and I'll forget what you
have said, but if I can help you any,
speak up."</p>
<p>Carnes puffed meditatively at his
pipe for a few minutes before replying.</p>
<p>"It's really none of your business.
Doctor," he said at length, "and yet I
know that a corpse is a chatterbox compared
to you when you are told anything
in confidence, and I really need
to unload my mind. It has been kept
from the press so far; but I don't know
how long it can be kept muzzled. In
strict confidence, the President of the
United State acts as though he were
crazy."</p>
<p>"Quite a section of the press has
claimed that for a long time," replied
Dr. Bird, with a twinkle in his eye.</p>
<p>"I don't mean crazy in that way, Doctor,
I mean <i>really</i> crazy. Bugs! Nuts!
Bats in his belfry!"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">D</span><span class="upper">r. Bird</span> whistled softly.</p>
<p>"Are you sure, Carnes?" he
asked.</p>
<p>"As sure as may be. Both of his
physicians think so. They were non-committal
for a while, especially as
the first attack waned and he seemed
to recover, but when his second attack
came on more violently than the first
and the President began to act queerly,
they had to take the Presidential detail
into their confidence. He has been
quietly examined by some of the greatest
psychiatrists in the country, but
none of them have ventured on a positive
verdict as to the nature of the malady.
They admit, of course, that it exists,
but they won't classify it. The
fact that it is intermittent seems to
have them stopped. He was bad a
month ago but he recovered and became,
to all appearances, normal for a
time. About a week ago he began to
show queer symptoms again and now
he is getting worse daily. If he goes
on getting worse for another week, it
will have to be announced so that the
Vice-President can take over the duties
of the head of the government."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">W</span><span class="upper">hat</span> are the symptoms?"</p>
<p>"The first we noticed was a
failing of his memory. Coupled with
this was a restlessness and a habit of
nocturnal prowling. He tosses continually
on his bed and mutters and at
times leaps up and rages back and
forth in his bedchamber, howling and
raging. Then he will calm down and
compose himself and go to sleep, only
to wake in half an hour and go through
the same performance. It is pretty
ghastly for the men on night guard."<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[115]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"How does he act in the daytime?"</p>
<p>"Heavy and lethargic. His memory
becomes a complete blank at times and
he talks wildly. Those are the times
we must guard against."</p>
<p>"Overwork?" queried the Doctor.</p>
<p>"Not according to his physicians.
His physical health is splendid and his
appetite unusually keen. He takes his
exercise regularly and suffers no ill
health except for a little eye trouble."</p>
<p>Dr. Bird leaped to his feet.</p>
<p>"Tell me more about this eye trouble,
Carnes," he demanded.</p>
<p>"Why, I don't know much about it,
Doctor. Admiral Clay told me that it
was nothing but a mild opthalmia
which should yield readily to treatment.
That was when he told me to
see that the shades of the President's
study were partially drawn to keep the
direct sunlight out."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">O</span><span class="upper">pthalmia</span> be sugared! What
do his eyes look like?"</p>
<p>"They are rather red and swollen and
a little bloodshot. He has a tendency
to shut them while he is talking and
he avoids light as much as possible. I
hadn't noticed anything peculiar about
it."</p>
<p>"Carnes, did you ever see a case of
snow blindness?"</p>
<p>The operative looked up in surprise.</p>
<p>"Yes, I have. I had it myself once
in Maine. Now that you mention it,
his case does look like snow blindness,
but such a thing is absurd in Washington
in August."</p>
<p>Dr. Bird rummaged in his desk and
drew out a book, which he consulted
for a moment.</p>
<p>"Now, Carnes," he said, "I want some
dates from you and I want them accurately.
Don't guess, for a great deal
may depend on the accuracy of your
answers. When was this mental disability
on the part of the President first
noticed?"</p>
<p>Carnes drew a pocket diary from his
coat and consulted it.</p>
<p>"The seventeenth of July," he replied.
"That is, we are sure, in view
of later developments, that that was
the date it first came on. We didn't
realize that anything was wrong until
the twentieth. On the night of the
nineteenth the President slept very
poorly, getting up and creating a disturbance
twice, and on the twentieth
he acted so queerly that it was necessary
to cancel three conferences."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">D</span><span class="upper">r. Bird</span> checked off the dates on
the book before him and nodded.</p>
<p>"Go on," he said, "and describe the
progress of the malady by days."</p>
<p>"It got progressively worse until the
night of the twenty-third. The twenty-fourth
he was no worse, and on the
twenty-fifth a slight improvement was
noticed. He got steadily better until,
by the third or fourth of August, he
was apparently normal. About the
twelfth he began to show signs of restlessness
which have increased daily
during the past week. Last night, the
nineteenth, he slept only a few minutes
and Brady, who was on guard, says
that his howls were terrible. His memory
has been almost a total blank today
and all of his appointments were
cancelled, ostensibly because of his eye
trouble. If he gets any worse, it probably
will be necessary to inform the
country as to his true condition."</p>
<p>When Carnes had finished, Dr. Bird
sat for a time in concentrated thought.</p>
<p>"You did exactly right in coming to
me, Carnes," he said presently. "I
don't think that this is a job for a doctor
at all—I believe that it needs a
physicist and a chemist and possibly a
detective to cure him. We'll get busy."</p>
<p>"What do you mean, Doctor?" demanded
Carnes. "Do you think that
some exterior force is causing the
President's disability?"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">think</span> nothing, Carnes," replied
the Doctor grimly, "but I intend
to know something before I am
through. Don't ask for explanations:
this is not the time for talk, it is the
time for action. Can you get me into
the White House to-night?"<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"I doubt it, Doctor, but I'll try.
What excuse shall I give? I am not
supposed to have told you anything
about the President's illness."</p>
<p>"Get Bolton, your chief, on the
phone and tell him that you have talked
to me when you shouldn't have. He'll
blow up, but after he is through exploding,
tell him that I smell a rat and
that I want him down here at once
with <i>carte blanche</i> authority to do as
I see fit in the White House. If he
makes any fuss about it, remind him
of the fact that he has considered me
crazy several times in the past when
events showed that I was right. If he
won't play after that, let me talk to
him."</p>
<p>"All right, Doctor," replied Carnes
as he picked up the scientist's telephone
and gave the number of the
home of the Chief of the Secret Service.
"I'll try to bully him out of it.
He has a good deal of confidence in
your ability."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">alf</span> an hour later the door of Dr.
Bird's laboratory opened suddenly
to admit Bolton.</p>
<p>"Hello, Doctor," exclaimed the Chief,
"what the dickens have you got on
your mind now? I ought to skin
Carnes alive for talking out of turn,
but if you really have an idea, I'll forgive him.
What do you suspect?"</p>
<p>"I suspect several things, Bolton, but
I haven't time to tell you what they
are. I want to get quietly into the
White House as promptly as possible."</p>
<p>"That's easy," replied Bolton, "but
first I want to know what the object
of the visit is."</p>
<p>"The object is to see what I can find
out. My ideas are entirely too nebulous
to attempt to lay them out before
you just now. You've never worked
directly with me on a case before, but
Carnes can tell you that I have my
own methods of working and that I
won't spill my ideas until I have something
more definite to go on than I
have at present."</p>
<p>"The Doctor is right, Chief," said
Carnes. "He has an idea all right, but
wild horses won't drag it out of him
until he's ready to talk. You'll have
to take him on faith, as I always do."</p>
<p>Bolton hesitated a moment and then
shrugged his shoulders.</p>
<p>"Have it your own way, Doctor," he
said. "Your reputation, both as a scientist
and as an unraveller of tangled
skeins, is too good for me to boggle
about your methods. Tell me what
you want and I'll try to get it."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">want</span> to get into the White
House without undue prominence
being given to my movements,
and listen outside the President's door
for a short time. Later I will want
to examine his sleeping quarters carefully
and to make a few tests. I may
be entirely wrong in my assumptions,
but I believe that there is something
there that requires my attention."</p>
<p>"Come along," said Bolton. "I'll
get you in and let you listen, but the
rest we'll have to trust to luck on. You
may have to wait until morning."</p>
<p>"We'll cross that bridge when we get
to it," replied the Doctor. "I'll get a
little stuff together that we may need."</p>
<p>In a few moments he had packed
some apparatus in a bag and, taking up
it and an instrument case, he followed
Bolton and Carnes down the stairs and
out onto the grounds of the Bureau of
Standards.</p>
<p>"It's a beautiful moon, isn't it?" he
observed.</p>
<p>Carnes assented absently to the Doctor's
remark, but Bolton paid no attention
to the luminous disc overhead,
which was flooding the landscape with
its mellow light.</p>
<p>"My car is waiting," he announced.</p>
<p>"All right, old man, but stop for a
moment and admire this moon," protested
the Doctor. "Have you ever
seen a finer one?"</p>
<p>"Come on and let the moon alone,"
snorted Bolton.</p>
<p>"My dear man, I absolutely refuse
to move a step until you pause in your
headlong devotion to duty and pay the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[117]</SPAN></span>
homage due to Lady Luna. Don't you
realize, you benighted Christian, that
you are gazing upon what has been
held to be a deity, or at least the visible
manifestation of deity, for ages immemorial?
Haven't you ever had time
to study the history of the moon-worshipping
cults? They are as old as
mankind, you know. The worship of
Isis was really only an exalted type of
moon worship. The crescent moon,
you may remember, was one of her
most sacred emblems."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">B</span><span class="upper">olton</span> paused and looked at the
Doctor suspiciously.</p>
<p>"What are you doing—pulling my
leg?" he demanded.</p>
<p>"Not at all, my dear fellow. Carnes,
doesn't the sight of the glowing orb
of night influence you to pious meditation
upon the frailty of human life and
the insignificance of human ambition?"</p>
<p>"Not to any very great degree," replied
Carnes dryly.</p>
<p>"Carnesy, old dear, I fear that you
are a crass materialist. I am beginning
to despair of ever inculcating in you
any respect for the finer and subtler
things of life. I must try Bolton.
Bolton, have you ever seen a finer
moon? Remember that I won't move a
step until you have carefully considered
the matter and fully answered my
question."</p>
<p>Bolton looked first at the Doctor,
then at Carnes, and finally he looked
reluctantly at the moon.</p>
<p>"It's a fine one," he admitted, "but
all full moons look large on clear
nights at this time of the year."</p>
<p>"Then you <i>have</i> studied the moon?"
cried Dr. Bird with delight. "I was
sure—"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">H</span><span class="upper">e</span> broke off his speech suddenly
and listened. From a distance
came the mournful howl of a dog. It
was answered in a moment by another
howl from a different direction. Dog
after dog took up the chorus until the
air was filled with the melancholy wailing
of the animals.</p>
<p>"See, Bolton," remarked the Doctor,
"even the dogs feel the chastening influence
of the Lady of Night and repent
of the sins of their youth and
the follies of their manhood, or should
one say doghood? Come along. I feel
that the call of duty must tear us away
from the contemplation of the beauties
of nature."</p>
<p>He led the way to Bolton's car and
got in without further words. A half-hour
later, Bolton led the way into the
White House. A word to the secret
service operative on guard at the door
admitted him and his party, and he led
the way to the newly constructed solarium
where the President slept. An
operative stood outside the door.</p>
<p>"What word, Brady?" asked Bolton
in a whisper.</p>
<p>"He seems worse, sir. I doubt if he
has slept at all. Admiral Clay has been
in several times, but he didn't do much
good. There, listen! The President
is getting up again."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">F</span><span class="upper">rom</span> behind the closed door
which confronted them came
sounds of a person rising from a bed
and pacing the floor, slowly at first,
and then more and more rapidly, until
it was almost a run. A series of groans
came to the watchers and then a long
drawn out howl. Bolton shuddered.</p>
<p>"Poor devil!" he muttered.</p>
<p>Dr. Bird shot a quick glance around.</p>
<p>"Where is Admiral Clay?" he asked.</p>
<p>"He is sleeping upstairs. Shall I
call him?"</p>
<p>"No. Take me to his room."</p>
<p>The President's naval physician
opened the door in response to Bolton's
knock.</p>
<p>"Is he worse?" he demanded anxiously.</p>
<p>"I don't think so, Admiral," replied
Bolton. "I want to introduce you to
Dr. Bird of the Bureau of Standards.
He wants to talk with you about the
case."</p>
<p>"I am honored, Doctor," said the
physician as he grasped the scientist's
outstretched hand. "Come in. Pardon<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[118]</SPAN></span>
my appearance, but I was startled out
of a doze when you knocked. Have a
chair and tell me how I can serve you."</p>
<p>Dr. Bird drew a notebook from his
pocket.</p>
<p>"I have received certain dates in
connection with the President's malady
from Operative Carnes," he said,
"and I wish you to verify them."</p>
<p>"Pardon me a moment, Doctor," interrupted
the Admiral, "but may I ask
what is your connection with the matter?
I was not aware that you were
a physician or surgeon."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">D</span><span class="upper">r. Bird</span> is here by the authority
of the secret service," replied
Bolton. "He has no connection
with the medical treatment of the
President, but permit me to remind
you that the secret service is responsible
for the safety of the President and
so have a right to demand such details
about him as are necessary for his
proper protection."</p>
<p>"I have no intention in obstructing
you in the proper performance of your
duties, Mr. Bolton," began the Admiral
stiffly.</p>
<p>"Pardon me, Admiral," broke in Dr.
Bird, "it seems to me that we are getting
started wrong. I suspect that
certain exterior forces are more or less
concerned in this case and I have communicated
my suspicions to Mr. Bolton.
He in turn brought me here in
order to request from you your cooperation
in the matter. We have no
idea of demanding anything and are
really seeking help which we believe
that you can give us."</p>
<p>"Pardon me, Admiral," said Bolton.
"I had no intention of angering you."</p>
<p>"I am at your service, gentlemen,"
replied Admiral Clay. "What information
did you wish, Doctor?"</p>
<p>"At first merely a verification of the
history of the case as I have it."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">D</span><span class="upper">r. Bird</span> read the notes he had
taken down from Carnes and the
Admiral nodded agreement.</p>
<p>"Those dates are correct," he said.</p>
<p>"Now, Admiral, there are two further
points on which I wish enlightenment.
The first is the opthalmia which is
troubling the patient."</p>
<p>"It is nothing to be alarmed about
as far as symptoms go, Doctor," replied
the Admiral. "It is a rather mild
case of irritation, somewhat analogous
to granuloma, but rather stubborn. He
had an attack several weeks ago and
while it did not yield to treatment as
readily as I could have wished, it did
clear up nicely in a couple of weeks
and I was quite surprised at this recurrent
attack. His sight is in no danger."</p>
<p>"Have you tried to connect this opthalmia
with his mental aberrations?"</p>
<p>"Why no, Doctor, there is no connection."</p>
<p>"Are you sure?"</p>
<p>"I am certain. The slight pain which
his eyes give him could never have
such an effect upon the mind of so able
and energetic a man as he is."</p>
<p>"Well, we'll let that pass for the moment.
The other question is this: has
he any form of skin trouble?"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> Admiral looked up in surprise.</p>
<p>"Yes, he has," he admitted. "I had
mentioned it to no one, for it really
amounts to nothing, but he has a slight
attack of some obscure form of dermatitis
which I am treating. It is affecting
only his face and hands."</p>
<p>"Please describe it."</p>
<p>"It has taken the form of a brown
pigmentation on the hands. On the
face it causes a slight itching and subsequent
peeling of the affected areas."</p>
<p>"In other words, it is acting like
sunburn?"</p>
<p>"Why, yes, somewhat. It is not that,
however, for he has been exposed to
the sun very little lately, on account
of his eyes."</p>
<p>"I notice that he is sleeping in the
new solarium which was added last
winter to the executive mansion. Can
you tell me with what type of glass it
is equipped?"<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[119]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"Yes. It is not equipped with glass
at all, but with fused quartz."</p>
<p>"When did he start to sleep there?"</p>
<p>"As soon as it was completed."</p>
<p>"And all the time the windows have
been of fused quartz?"</p>
<p>"No. They were glazed at first, but
the glass was removed and the fused
quartz substituted at my suggestion
about two months ago, just before this
trouble started."</p>
<p>"Thank you, Admiral. You have
given me several things to think about.
My ideas are a little too nebulous to
share as yet but I think that I can
give you one piece of very sound advice.
The President is spending a very
restless night. If you would remove
him from the solarium and get him to
lie down in a room which is glazed
with ordinary glass, and pull down the
shades so that he will be in the dark,
I think that he will pass a better
night."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span><span class="upper">dmiral Clay</span> looked keenly
into the piercing black eyes of
the Doctor.</p>
<p>"I know something of you by reputation,
Bird," he said slowly, "and I
will follow your advice. Will you tell
me why you make this particular
suggestion?"</p>
<p>"So that I can work in that solarium
to-night without interruption," replied
Dr. Bird. "I have some tests which
I wish to carry out while it is still
dark. If my results are negative, forget
what I have told you. If they
yield any information, I will be glad
to share it with you at the proper time.
Now get the President out of that
solarium and tell me when the coast
is clear."</p>
<p>The Admiral donned a dressing
gown and stepped out of the room. He
returned in fifteen minutes.</p>
<p>"The solarium is at your disposal,
Doctor," he announced. "Shall I
accompany you?"</p>
<p>"If you wish," assented Dr. Bird as
he picked up his apparatus and strode
out of the room.</p>
<p>In the solarium he glanced quickly
around, noting the position of each of
the articles of furniture.</p>
<p>"I presume that the President always
sleeps with his head in this
direction?" he remarked, pointing to
the pillow on the disturbed bed.</p>
<p>The Admiral nodded assent. Dr. Bird
opened the bag which he had packed
in his laboratory, took out a sheet of
cardboard covered with a metallic looking
substance, and placed it on the
pillow. He stepped back and donned
a pair of smoked glasses, watching it
intently. Without a word he took off
the glasses and handed them to the
Admiral. The Admiral donned them
and looked at the pillow. As he did
so an exclamation broke from his lips.</p>
<p>"That plate seems to glow," he said
in an astonished voice.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">D</span><span class="upper">r. Bird</span> stepped forward and
laid his hand on the pillow. He
was wearing a wrist watch with a
radiolite dial. The substance suddenly
increased its luminescence and began
to glow fiercely, long luminous streamers
seeming to come from the dial. The
Doctor took away his hand and substituted
a bottle of liquid for the plate on
the pillow. Immediately the bottle
began to glow with a phosphorescent
light.</p>
<p>"What on earth is it?" gasped
Carnes.</p>
<p>"Excitation of a radioactive fluid,"
replied the Doctor. "The question is,
what is exciting it. Somebody get a
stepladder."</p>
<p>While Bolton was gone after the
ladder, the Doctor took from his bag
what looked like an ordinary pane of
glass.</p>
<p>"Take this, Carnes," he directed, "and
start holding it over each of those
panes of quartz which you can reach.
Stop when I tell you to."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> operative held the glass over
each of the panes in succession,
but the Doctor, who kept his eyes
covered with the smoked glasses and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[120]</SPAN></span>
fastened on the plate which he had
replaced on the pillow, said nothing.
When Bolton arrived with the ladder,
the process went on. One end and
most of the front of the solarium had
been covered before an exclamation
from the Doctor halted the work.</p>
<p>"That's the one," he exclaimed.
"Hold the glass there for a moment."</p>
<p>Hurriedly he removed the plate from
the pillow and replaced the phial of
liquid. There was only a very feeble
glow.</p>
<p>"Good enough," he cried. "Take
away the glass, but mark that pane, and
be ready to replace it when I give the
word."</p>
<p>From the instrument case he had
brought he took out a spectroscope.
He turned back the mattress and
mounted it on the bedstead.</p>
<p>"Cover that pane," he directed.</p>
<p>Carnes did so, and the Doctor swung
the receiving tube of the instrument
until it pointed at the covered pane.
He glanced into the eyepiece, and then
held a tiny flashlight for an instant
opposite the third tube.</p>
<p>"Uncover that pane," he said.</p>
<p>Carnes took down the glass plate and
the Doctor gazed into the instrument.
He made some adjustments.</p>
<p>"Are you familiar with spectroscopy,
Admiral?" he asked.</p>
<p>"Somewhat."</p>
<p>"Take a squint in here and tell me
what you see."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> Admiral applied his eye to
the instrument and looked long
and earnestly.</p>
<p>"There are some lines there, Doctor,"
he said, "but your instrument is badly
out of adjustment. They are in what
should be the ultra-violet sector,
according to your scale."</p>
<p>"I forgot to tell you that this is a
fluoroscopic spectroscope designed for
the detection of ultra-violet lines,"
replied Dr. Bird. "Those lines you see
are ultra-violet, made visible to the eye
by activation of a radioactive compound
whose rays in turn impinge on
a zinc blende sheet. Do you recognize
the lines?"</p>
<p>"No, I don't."</p>
<p>"Small wonder; I doubt whether
there are a dozen people who would.
I have never seen them before,
although I recognize them from
descriptions I have read. Bolton, come
here. Sight along this instrument and
through that plate of glass which
Carnes is holding and tell me what
office that window belongs to."</p>
<p>Bolton sighted as directed up at the
side of the State, War and Navy
Building.</p>
<p>"I can't tell exactly at this time of
night, Doctor," he said, "but I'll go
into the building and find out."</p>
<p>"Do so. Have you a flashlight?"</p>
<p>"Yes."</p>
<p>"Flash it momentarily out of each
of the suspected windows in turn until
you get an answering flash from here.
When you do, flash it out of each pane
of glass in the window until you get
another flash from here. Then come
back and tell me what office it is. Mark
the pane so that we can locate it again
in the morning."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">I</span><span class="upper">t</span> is the office of the Assistant to
the Adjutant General of the
Army," reported Bolton ten minutes
later.</p>
<p>"What is there in the room?"</p>
<p>"Nothing but the usual desks and
chairs."</p>
<p>"I suspected as much. The window
is merely a reflector. That is all that
we can do for to-night, gentlemen.
Admiral, keep your patient quiet and
in a room with <i>glass</i> windows, preferably
with the shades drawn, until
further notice. Bolton, meet me here
with Carnes at sunrise. Have a picked
detail of ten men standing by where
we can get hold of them in a hurry.
In the mean time, get the Chief of Air
Service out of bed and have him order
a plane at Langley Field to be ready
to take off at 6 A. M. He is not to take
off, however, until I give him orders
to do so. Do you understand?"<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[121]</SPAN></span></p>
<p>"Everything will be ready for you,
Doctor, but I confess that I don't know
what it is all about."</p>
<p>"It's the biggest case you ever
tackled, old man, and I hope that we
can pull it off successfully. I'd like to
go over it with you now, but I'll be
busy at the Bureau for the rest of the
night. Drop me off there, will you?"</p>
<p>At sunrise the next morning, Bolton
met Dr. Bird at the entrance to the
White House grounds.</p>
<p>"Where is your detail?" he asked.</p>
<p>"In the State, War and Navy Building."</p>
<p>"Good. I want to go to the solarium,
put a light on the place where the
President's pillow was last night, and
mark that pane of quartz we were
looking through. Then we'll join the
detail."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">D</span><span class="upper">r. Bird</span> placed the light and
walked with Carnes across the
White House grounds. Bolton's badge
secured admission to the State, War
and Navy Building for the party and
they made their way to the office of
the Assistant to the Adjutant General.</p>
<p>"Did you mark the pane of glass
through which you flashed your light
last night, Bolton?" asked the Doctor.</p>
<p>The detective touched one of the
panes.</p>
<p>"Good," exclaimed the Doctor. "I
notice that this window has hooks for
a window washer's belt. Get a life belt,
will you?"</p>
<p>When the belt was brought, the Doctor
turned to Carnes.</p>
<p>"Carnes," he said, "hook on this life
saver and climb out on the window
ledge. Take this piece of apparatus
with you."</p>
<p>He handed Carnes a piece of apparatus
which looked like two telescopes
fastened to a base, with a screw
adjustment for altering the angles of
the barrels.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">C</span><span class="upper">arnes</span> took it and looked at it
inquiringly.</p>
<p>"That is what I was making at the
Bureau last night," explained Dr. Bird.
"It is a device which will enable me to
locate the source of the beam which was
reflected from this pane of glass onto
the President's pillow. I'll show you
how to work it. You know that when
light is reflected the angle of reflection
always equals the angle of incidence?
Well, you place these three feet
against the pane of glass, thus putting
the base of the instrument in a plane
parallel to the pane of glass. By turning
these two knobs, one of which
gives lateral and the other vertical
adjustment, you will manipulate the
instrument until the first telescope is
pointing directly toward the President's
pillow. Now notice that the two
telescope barrels are fastened together
and are connected to the knobs, so that
when the knobs are turned, the scopes
are turned in equal and opposite
amounts. When one is turned from its
present position five degrees to the
west, the other automatically turns five
degrees to the east. When one is elevated,
the other is correspondingly depressed.
Thus, when the first tube
points toward the pillow, the other will
point toward the source of the reflected
beam."</p>
<p>"Clever!" ejaculated Bolton.</p>
<p>"It is rather crude and may not be
accurate enough to locate the source
exactly, but at least it will give us a
pretty good idea of where to look.
Given time, a much more accurate
instrument could have been made, but
two telescopic rifle sights and a theodolite
base were all the materials I
could find to work with. Climb out,
Carnesy, and do your stuff."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">C</span><span class="upper">arnes</span> climbed out on the window
and fastened the hooks of
the life saver to the rings set in the
window casings. He sat the base of
the instrument against the pane of
glass and manipulated the telescope
knobs as Dr. Bird signalled from the
inside. The scientist was hard to
please with the adjustment, but at last
the cross hairs of the first telescope<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[122]</SPAN></span>
were centered on the light in the solarium.
He changed his position and
stared through the second tube.</p>
<p>"The angle is too acute and the distance
too great for accuracy," he said
with an air of disappointment. "The
beam comes from the roof of a house
down along Pennsylvania Avenue, but
I can't tell from here which one it is.
Take a look, Bolton."</p>
<p>The Chief of the Secret Service
stared through the telescope.</p>
<p>"I couldn't be sure, Doctor," he replied.
"I can see something on the roof
of one of the houses, but I can't tell
what it is and I couldn't tell the house
when I got in front of it."</p>
<p>"It won't do to make a false move,"
said the Doctor. "Did you arrange for
that plane?"</p>
<p>"It is waiting your orders at the
field, Doctor."</p>
<p>"Good. I'll go up to the office of the
Chief of Air Service and get in touch
with the pilot over the Chief's private
line. There are some orders that I
wish to give him and some signals to
be arranged."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">D</span><span class="upper">r. Bird</span> returned in a few
minutes.</p>
<p>"The plane is taking off now and
will be over the city soon," he
announced. "We'll take a stroll down
the Avenue until we are in the vicinity
of the house, and then wait for the
plane. Carnes will take five of your
men and go down behind the house
and the rest of us will go in front.
Which building do you think it is,
Bolton?"</p>
<p>"About the fourth from the corner."</p>
<p>"All right, the men going down the
back will take station behind the house
next to the corner and the rest of us
will get in front of the same building.
When the plane comes over, watch it.
If you receive no signal, go to the next
house and wait for him to make a loop
and come over you again. Continue
this until the pilot throws a white
parachute over. That is the signal that
we are covering the right house. When
you get that signal, Carnes, leave two
men outside and break in with the
other three. Get that apparatus on the
roof and the men who are operating it.
Bolton and I will attack the front door
at the same time. Does everybody
understand?"</p>
<p>Murmurs of assent came from the
detail.</p>
<p>"All right, let's go. Carnes, lead out
with your men and go half a block
ahead so that the two parties will arrive
in position at about the same time."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">C</span><span class="upper">arnes</span> left the building with five
of the operatives. Dr. Bird and
Bolton waited for a few minutes and
then started down Pennsylvania Avenue,
the five men of their squad following
at intervals. For three-quarters
of a mile they sauntered down the
street.</p>
<p>"This should be it, Doctor," said
Bolton.</p>
<p>"I think so, and here comes our
plane."</p>
<p>They watched the swift scout plane
from Langley Field swing down low
over the house and then swoop up into
the sky again without making a signal.
The party walked down the street one
house and paused. Again the plane
swept over them without sign. As
they stopped in front of the next house
a white parachute flew from the cockpit
of the plane and the aircraft, its
mission accomplished, veered off to the
south toward its hangar.</p>
<p>"This is the place," cried Bolton.
"Haggerty and Johnson, you two cover
the street. Bemis, take the lower door.
The rest come with me."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">F</span><span class="upper">ollowed</span> closely by Dr. Bird
and two operatives, Bolton
sprinted across the street and up the
steps leading to the main entrance of
the house. The door was barred, and
he hurled his weight against it without
result.</p>
<p>"One side, Bolton," snapped Dr. Bird.</p>
<p>The diminutive Chief drew aside and
Dr. Bird's two hundred pounds of bone<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[123]</SPAN></span>
and muscle crashed against the door.
The lock gave and the Doctor barely
saved himself from sprawling headlong
on the hall floor. A woman's
scream rang out, and the Doctor swore
under his breath.</p>
<p>"Upstairs! To the roof!" he cried.</p>
<p>Followed by the rest of the party,
he sprinted up the stairway which
opened before him. Just as he reached
the top his way was barred by an Amazonian
figure in a green bathrobe.</p>
<p>"Who th' divil arre yer?" demanded
an outraged voice.</p>
<p>"Police," snapped Bolton. "One
side!"</p>
<p>"Wan side, is it?" demanded the
fiery haired Amazon. "The divil a
stip ye go until ye till me ye'er bizness.
Phwat th' divil arre yer doin' in th'
house uv a rayspictable female at this
hour uv th' marnin'?"</p>
<p>"One side, I tell you!" cried Bolton
as he strove to push past the figure
that barred the way.</p>
<p>"Oh, ye wud, wud yer, little mann?"
demanded the Irishwoman as she
grasped Bolton by the collar and shook
him as a terrier does a rat. Dr. Bird
stifled his laughter with difficulty and
seized her by the arm. With a heave
on Bolton's collar she raised him from
the ground and swung him against the
Doctor, knocking him off his feet.</p>
<p>"Hilp! P'lice! Murther!" she
screamed at the top of her voice.</p>
<p>"Damn it, woman, we're on—"</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">D</span><span class="upper">r. Bird's</span> voice was cut short by
the sound of a pistol shot from
the roof, followed by two others.
The Irishwoman dropped Bolton and
slumped into a sitting position and
screamed lustily. Bolton and Dr. Bird,
with the two operatives at their heels,
raced for the roof. Before they reached
it another volley of shots rang out,
these sounding from the rear of the
building. They made their way to the
upper floor and found a ladder running
to a skylight in the roof. At the foot
of the ladder stood one of Carnes'
party.</p>
<p>"What is it, Williams?" demanded
Bolton.</p>
<p>"I don't know, Chief. Carnes and
the other two went up there, and then
I heard shooting. My orders were to
let no one come down the ladder."</p>
<p>As he spoke, Carnes' head appeared
at the skylight.</p>
<p>"It's the right place, all right, Doctor,"
he called. "Come on up, the
shooting is all over."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">D</span><span class="upper">r. Bird</span> mounted the ladder and
stepped out on the roof. Set on
one edge was a large piece of apparatus,
toward which the scientist
eagerly hastened. He bent over it for
a few moments and then straightened
up.</p>
<p>"Where is the operator?" he asked.</p>
<p>Carnes silently led the way to the
edge of the roof and pointed down.
Dr. Bird leaned over. At the foot of
the fire escape he saw a crumpled dark
heap, with a secret service operative
bending over it.</p>
<p>"Is he dead, Olmstead?" called
Carnes.</p>
<p>"Dead as a mackerel," came the
reply. "Richards got him through the
head on his first shot."</p>
<p>"Good business," said Dr. Bird. "We
probably could never have secured a
conviction and the matter is best
hushed up anyway. Bolton, have two
of your men help me get this apparatus
up to the Bureau. I want to examine
it a little. Have the body taken to the
morgue and shut up the press. Find
out which room the chap occupied and
search it, and bring all his papers to
me. From a criminal standpoint, this
case is settled, but I want to look into
the scientific end of it a little more."</p>
<p>"I'd like to know what it was all
about, Doctor," protested Bolton. "I
have followed your lead blindly, and
now I have a housebreaking without
search-warrant and a killing to explain,
and still I am about as much in the
dark as I was at the beginning."</p>
<p>"Excuse me, Bolton," said Dr. Bird
contritely; "I didn't mean to slight<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[124]</SPAN></span>
you. Admiral Clay wants to know
about it and so does Carnes, although
he knows me too well to say so. As
soon as I have digested the case I'll
let you know and I'll go over the whole
thing with you."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="dropcap">A</span> <span class="upper">week</span> later Dr. Bird sat in conference
with the President in
the executive office of the White
House. Beside him sat Admiral Clay,
Carnes and Bolton.</p>
<p>"I have told the President as much
as I know, Doctor," said the Admiral,
"and he would like to hear the details
from your lips. He has fully recovered
from his malady and there is no
danger of exciting him."</p>
<p>"I cannot read Russian," said Dr.
Bird slowly, "and so was forced to
depend on one of my assistants to
translate the papers which Mr. Bolton
found in Stokowsky's room. There is
nothing in them to definitely connect
him with the Russian Union of Soviet
Republics, but there is little doubt in
my mind that he was a Red agent and
that Russia supplied the money which
he spent. It would be disastrous to
Russia's plans to have too close an
accord between this country and the
British Empire, and I have no doubt
that the coming visit of Premier McDougal
was the underlying cause of
the attempt. So much for the reason.</p>
<p>"As to how I came to suspect what
was happening, the explanation is very
simple. When Carnes first told me of
your malady, Mr. President, I happened
to be checking Von Beyer's
results in the alleged discovery of a
new element, lunium. In the article
describing his experiments, Von Beyer
mentions that when he tried to observe
the spectra, he encountered a mild
form of opthalmia which was quite
stubborn to treatment. He also mentions
a peculiar mental unbalance and
intense exhilaration which the rays
seemed to cause both in himself and
in his assistants. The analogy between
his observations and your case struck
me at once.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">F</span><span class="upper">or</span> ages the moon has been an
object of worship by various
religious sects, and some of the most
obscene orgies of which we have record
occurred in the moonlight. The
full moon seems to affect dogs to a
state of partial hypnosis with consequent
howling and evident pain in the
eyes. Certain feeble minded persons
have been known to be adversely
affected by moonlight as well as some
cases of complete mental aberration. In
other words, while moonlight has no
practical effect on the normal human
in its usual concentration, it does have
an adverse effect on certain types of
mentality and, despite the laughter of
medical science, there seems to be
something in the theory of 'moon
madness.' This effect Von Beyer attributed
to the emanations of lunium,
which element he detected in the spectra
of the moon, in the form of a wide
band in the ultra-violet region.</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">I</span> <span class="upper">obtained</span> from Carnes a history
of your case, and when I
found that your attacks grew violent
with the full moon and subsided with
the new moon, I was sure that I was
on the right track, although I had at
that time no way of knowing whether
it was from natural or artificial causes
that the effect was being produced. I
interviewed Admiral Clay and found
that you were suffering from a form
of dermititis resembling sunburn, and
that convinced me that an attack was
being made on your sanity, for an
excess of ultra-violet light will always
tend to produce sunburn. I inquired
about the windows of your solarium,
for ultra-violet light will not pass
through a lead glass. When the Admiral
told me that the glass had been
replaced with fused quartz, which is
quite permeable to ultra-violet and that
the change had been almost coincident
with the start of your malady, I asked
him to get you out of the solarium and
let me examine it.</p>
<p>"By means of certain fluorescent
substances which I used, I found that<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[125]</SPAN></span>
your pillow was being bathed in a
flood of ultra-violet light, and the
fluoro-spectroscope soon told me that
lunium emanations were present in
large quantities. These rays were not
coming to you directly from their
source, but one of the windows of the
State, War and Navy Building was
being used as a reflector. I located
the approximate source of the ray by
means of an improvised apparatus, and
we surrounded the place. Stokowsky
was killed while attempting to escape.
I guess that is about all there is to it."</p>
<p>"Thank you, Doctor," said the President.
"I would be interested in a
description of the apparatus which he
used to produce this effect."</p>
<hr class="invisible" />
<p><span class="quotem">"</span><span class="dropcap">T</span><span class="upper">he</span> apparatus was quite simple,
Sir. It was merely a large collector
of moonlight, which was thrown
after collection onto a lunium plate.
The resultant emanations were turned
into a parallel beam by a parabolic reflector
and focused, through a rock
crystal lens with an extremely long
focal length, onto your pillow."</p>
<p>"Then Stokowsky had isolated Von
Beyer's new element?" asked the
President.</p>
<p>"I am still in doubt whether it is a
new element or merely an allotropic
modification of the common element,
cadmium. The plate which he used
has a very peculiar property. When
moonlight, or any other reflected light
of the same composition falls on it, it
acts on the ray much as the button of
a Roentgen tube acts on a cathode
ray. As the cathode ray is absorbed
and an entirely new ray, the X-ray, is
given off by the button, just so is the
reflected moonlight absorbed and a
new ray of ultra-violet given off. This
is the ray which Von Beyer detected.
I thought that I could catch traces of
Von Beyer's lines in my spectroscope,
and I think now that it is due to a
trace of lunium in the cadmium plating
of the barrels. Von Beyer could
have easily made the same mistake.
Von Beyer's work, together with Sto<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[126]</SPAN></span>kowsky's
opens up an entirely new
field of spectroscopic research. I
would give a good deal to go over to
Baden and go into the matter with
Von Beyer and make some plans for
the exploitation of the new field, but
I'm afraid that my pocketbook wouldn't
stand the trip."</p>
<p>"I think that the United States owes
you that trip, Dr. Bird," said the Chief
Executive with a smile. "Make your
plans to go as soon as you get your
data together. I think that the
Treasury will be able to take care of
the expense without raising the income
tax next year."</p>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<div class="border3" style="width: 535px;">
<h2 class="under">IN THE NEXT ISSUE</h2>
<h2 class="pad">Murder Madness</h2>
<h4 style="margin-top: -.5em;"><i>Beginning an intensely Gripping,<br/>
Four-Part Novel</i></h4>
<h3><i>By</i> MURRAY LEINSTER</h3>
<h2 class="pad">The Atom Smasher</h2>
<h4 style="margin-top: -.5em;"><i>A Thrilling Adventure into<br/>
Time and Space</i></h4>
<h3><i>By</i> VICTOR ROUSSEAU</h3>
<h2 class="pad">Into the Ocean's Depths</h2>
<h4 style="margin-top: -.5em;"><i>A Sequel to "From the Ocean's Depths"</i></h4>
<h3><i>By</i> SEWELL PEASLEE WRIGHT</h3>
<h2 class="pad">Brigands of the Moon</h2>
<h4 style="margin-top: -.5em;"><i>Part Three of the Amazing Serial</i></h4>
<h3><i>By</i> RAY CUMMINGS</h3>
<h2>——<i>And Others!</i></h2></div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<hr />
<div class="image">
<SPAN name="The_Readers_Corner" id="The_Readers_Corner"></SPAN><ANTIMG src="images/i127.jpg" width-obs="585" height-obs="530" alt="The Readers' Corner
A Meeting Place for Readers of
Astounding Stories" title="" /></div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="lnl"><i>Our Thanks</i></div>
<p style="margin-top: 1em;">Three months ago the Clayton Magazines<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[127]</SPAN></span>
presented to lovers of Science
Fiction everywhere a new magazine
with a brand-new policy—Astounding
Stories—and now it is the Editor's
great pleasure to announce to our
thousands of friends that this new
magazine is enjoying a splendid
success.</p>
<p>Within twenty-four hours of the
time that Astounding Stories was
released for sale, letters of praise began
pouring into our office, and—and this
is significant—many of them clearly
revealed that their writers had grasped
the essential difference of the new
Science Fiction magazine over the
others.</p>
<p>We cannot better state this difference,
this improvement, than by quoting
what the Reader whose letter
appears under the caption, "And Kind
to Their Grandmothers," says in his
very first paragraph: "And I was still
more pleased, and surprised, to find
that the Editor seems to know that
such stories should have real story
interest, besides a scientific idea." It is
exactly that. Every story that appears
in Astounding Stories not only must
contain some of the forecasted scientific
achievements of To-morrow, but
must be told vividly, excitingly, with
all the human interest that goes to
make any story enjoyable To-day.</p>
<p>The Editor and staff of Astounding
Stories express their sincere thanks to
all who have contributed to our splendid
start—especially to those who had
the kindness to write in with their
helpful criticism.</p>
<p>Already one of your common suggestions
has been taken up and embodied
in our magazine, and so we
have this new department, "The
Readers' Corner," which from now on
will be an informal meeting place for
all readers of Astounding Stories. We
want you never to forget that a cordial
and perpetual invitation is extended
to you to write in and talk over with
all of us anything of interest you may
have to say in connection with our
magazine.</p>
<p>If you can toss in a word of praise,
that's fine; if only criticism, we'll welcome
that just as much, for we may
be able to find from it a way to improve
our magazine. If you have your own
private theory of how airplanes will
be run in 2500, or if you think the real
Fourth Dimension is different from
what it is sometimes described—write
in and share your views with all of us.</p>
<p>This department is all yours, and the
job of running it and making it interesting
is largely up to you. So "come
over in 'The Readers' Corner'" and
have your share in what everyone will
be saying.</p>
<div class="right">—<i>The Editor.</i></div>
<div class="microspace"> </div>
<div class="lnl">"<i>And Kind to Their Grandmothers!</i>"</div>
<div class="blockquote"><p>Dear Editor:</p>
<p>I received a pleasant surprise a few days
ago when I found a new Science Fiction magazine
at the newsstand—Astounding Stories.
And I was still more pleased, and surprised,
to find that the Editor seems to know that
such stories should have real story interest,
besides a scientific idea.</p>
<p>Of course I took with a grain of salt the
invitation to write to the editor and give my
preference of the kind of stories I like. I
know that every editor, down in his heart,
thinks his magazine is perfect "as is." In fact,
praise is what they want, not suggestions,
judging by the letters they print.</p>
<p>Well, I can conscientiously give you some
praise. If Astounding Stories keep up to the
standard of the first issue it will be all right.
Evidently you can afford to hire the best
writers obtainable. Notice you've signed up
some of my favorites, Murray Leinster, R. F.
Starzl, Ray Cummings. I like their stuff because
it has the rare quality rather vaguely
described as "distinction," which make the
story remembered for a long time.</p>
<p>The story "Tanks," by Murray Leinster, is
my idea of what such a story should be. The
author does not start out, "Listen, my children,
and you shall hear a story so wonderful
you won't believe it. Only after the death of
Professor Bulging Dome do I dare to make
it public to a doubting world." No, he simply
proceeds to tell the story. If I were reading<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[128]</SPAN></span>
it in the Saturday Evening Post or Ladies
Home Journal it would be all right to prepare
me for the story by explaining that of course
the author does not vouch for the story, it
having been told to him by a crazy Eurasian
in a Cottage Grove black-and-tan speakeasy
at 3.30 A. M. In Astounding Stories I expect
the story to be unusual, so don't bother telling
me it is so. That criticism applies to
"Phantoms of Reality," which is a story above
the average, though, despite its rather flat
title and slow beginning.</p>
<p>Here's another good point about "Tanks."
Its characters are human. Some authors of
stories of the future make their characters
all brains—cold monsters, with no humanity
in them. Such a story has neither human interest
nor plausibility. The sky's the limit, I
say, for mechanical or scientific accomplishments,
but human emotions will be the same
a thousand years from now. And even supposing
that they will be changed, your
readers have present day emotions. The
magazine can not prosper unless those present-day
emotions are aroused and mirrored
by thoroughly human characters. The situation
may be just as outre as you like—the
more unusual the better—but it is the response
of normal human emotions to most unusual
situations that gives a magazine such as yours
its powerful and unique "kick."</p>
<p>The response of the two infantrymen in
"Tanks" to the strange and terrifying new
warfare of the future exemplifies another
point I would like to make—the fact that no
matter what marvels the future may bring,
the people who will live then will take them
in a matter-of-fact way. Their conversation
will be cigarettes, "sag-paste," drinks, women.
References to the scientific marvels around
them will be casual and sketchy. How many
million words of an average car owner's conversation
would you have to report to give
a visitor from 1700 an idea of internal combustion
engines? The author, if skillful, can convey
that information in other ways. Yet a lot
of stories printed have long, stilted conversations
in which the author thinks he is conveying
in an entertaining way his foundation
situation. Personally, I like a lot of physical
action—violent action preferred. This is so,
probably, because I'm a school teacher and
sedentary in my habits. I have never written
a story in my life, but I'm the most voracious
consumer of stories in Chicago. I like to see
the hero get into a devil of a pickle, and to
have him smash his way out. I like 'em big,
tough, and kind to their grandmothers.</p>
<p>It seems to me that interplanetary stories
offer the best vehicle for all the desirable
qualities herein enumerated combined. There
is absolutely no restraint on the imagination,
except a few known astronomical facts—plenty
of opportunity for violent and dangerous
adventures, strange and terrestrially impossible
monsters. The human actors, set
down in the midst of such terrifying conditions,
which they battle dauntlessly, grinning
as they take their blows and returning them
with good will, cannot fail to rouse the admiration
of the reader. And make him buy
the next month's issue.</p>
<p>But spare us, please the stories in which
the hero, arriving on some other planet, is admitted
to the court of the king of the White
race, and leads their battles against the Reds,
the Browns, the Greens, and so on, eventually
marrying the king's daughter, who is always
golden-haired, of milky white complexion,
and has large blue eyes. Kindly reject
stories of interplanetary travel in which
a member of the party turns against the Earth
party and allies himself with the wormlike
Moon men, or what have you. Stories in
which a great inventor gone crazy threatens
to hurl the Earth into the Sun leave me cold
and despondent, for the simple reason that
crazy men are never great inventors. Name
a great inventor who wasn't perfectly sane,
if you can. The author makes the great inventor
insane to make it plausible that he
should want to destroy the World. Well, if
he is a good author he can find some other
motive.</p>
<p>One more thing. I like to smell, feel, hear
and even taste the action of a story as well as
see it. Some authors only let you see it, and
then they don't tell you whether it's in bright
or subdued light. The author of "Tanks" fulfills
my requirements in this respect, at least
partially.—Walter Boyle, c/o Mrs. Anna
Treitz, 4751 North Artesian, Chicago, Ill.</p>
</div>
<div class="lnl"><i>A Permanent Reader</i></div>
<div class="blockquote"><p>Dear Editor:</p>
<p>I want to thank you for the very entertaining
hours I spent perusing your new magazine,
Astounding Stories. I read one or two
other Science Fiction magazines—it seems
that tales of this sort intrigue me. However, I
wish to say that the debut number of your
magazine contained the best stories I ever
read. Again thanking you and assuring you
that should the stories continue thus I will
be a permanent reader—Irving E. Ettinger,
The Seville, Detroit, Mich.</p>
</div>
<div class="lnl"><i>We're Avoiding Reprints</i></div>
<div class="blockquote"><p>Dear Editor:</p>
<p>I am well pleased with your new magazine
and wish to offer you my congratulations and
best wishes. As I am well acquainted with
most of the Science Fiction now being written,
I am in a good position to criticize your
magazine.</p>
<p>First: The cover illustration is good, but
the inside drawings could be greatly improved.</p>
<p>Second: Holding the magazine together
with two staples is a good idea.</p>
<p>Third: The paper could be improved.</p>
<p>Fourth: The price is right.</p>
<p>Here I classify the stories. Excellent: "The
Beetle Horde," and "Tanks." Very Good:
"Cave of Horror," "Invisible Death," and
"Phantoms of Reality." Medium: "Compensation."
Poor: "Stolen Mind."</p>
<p>Please don't reprint any of Poe's, Wells',
or Verne's works. My prejudice to Verne,
Wells and Poe is that I have read all their
works in other magazines.</p>
<p>However, with all my criticizing, I think
that your magazine is a good one.—James<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[129]</SPAN></span>
Nichols, 1509 19th Street, Bakersfield, California.</p>
</div>
<div class="lnl"><i>Thanks, Mr. Marks!</i></div>
<div class="blockquote"><p>Dear Editor:</p>
<p>I purchased a copy of "our" new magazine
to-day and I think it excellent. I am glad to
see most of my old author friends contributing
for it, but how about looking up E. R.
Burroughs, David H. Keller, M. D., C. P.
Wantenbacker and A. Merritt? They are
marvelous writers. I see Wesso did your
cover and it is very good. I have been a reader
of four other Science Fiction monthly
magazines and two quarterlies, but I gladly
take this one into my fold and I think I speak
for every other Science Fiction lover when
I say this. Which means, if true, that your
publication will have everlasting success.
Here's hoping!—P. O. Marks, Jr., 893 York
Avenue, S. W., Atlanta, Ga.</p>
</div>
<div class="lnl"><i>A Fine Letter</i></div>
<div class="blockquote"><p>Dear Editor:</p>
<p>Having read through the first number of
Astounding Stories, my enthusiasm has
reached such a pitch that I find it difficult to
express myself adequately. A mere letter
such as this can give scarcely an inkling of
the unbounded enjoyment I derive from the
pages of this unique magazine. To use a trite
but appropriate phrase, "It fills a long-felt
need." True, there are other magazines which
specialize in Science Fiction; but, to my mind
they are not in a class with Astounding
Stories. In most of them the scientific element
is so emphasized that it completely
overshadows all else. In this magazine, happily,
such is not the case. Here we find science
subordinated to human interest, which is as
it should be. The love element, too, is present
and by no means unwelcome.</p>
<p>As for the literary quality of the stories,
it could not be improved on. Such craftsmen
as Cummings, Leinster and Rousseau never
fail to turn out a vivid, well-written tale. If
the stories in the succeeding issues are on
a par with those in the first, the success of
the magazine is assured.</p>
<p>By the way, your editorial explanation of
Astounding Stories was a gem. So many of
us take our marvelous modern inventions
for granted that we never consider how
miraculous they would seem to our forebears.
As you say, the only real difference
between the Astounding and the Commonplace
is Time. A magazine such as Astounding
Stories enables us to anticipate the wonders
of To-morrow. Through its pages we can
peer into the vistas of the future and behold
the world that is to be. Truly, you have
given us a rare treat—Allen Glasser, 931
Forest Ave., New York, N. Y.</p>
</div>
<div class="lnl"><i>The Science Correspondence Club
Broadcasts</i></div>
<div class="blockquote"><p>Dear Editor:</p>
<p>The other day I came upon Astounding
Stories on our local newsstand. I immediately
procured a copy because Science Fiction
is my favorite pastime, so to speak. I
was very much overjoyed that another good
Science Fiction magazine should come out,
and a Clayton Magazine too, which enhances
its splendid value still further. I have read
various members of the Clayton family and I
found each of them entertaining.</p>
<p>After finishing the first issue, I decided to
write in and express my feelings. The stories
were all good with the exception of "The
Stolen Mind." Just keep printing stories by
Cape, Meek, Ray Cummings, Murray Leinster,
C. V. Tench, Harl Vincent and R. F.
Starzl and I can predict now that your new
venture will be a huge success.</p>
<p>The main reason of this letter is to ask
your help in putting over Science Fiction
Week. This will take place in the early part
of February, the week of the 5th or after. We
want your co-operation in making this a big
success. You can help by running the attached
article upon the Science Correspondence
Club in your "Readers' Corner." It will
be a big aid.</p>
<p>I am sure, because you are the Editor of
Astounding Stories, that you will be pleased
to help us in this venture. Science Fiction is
our common meeting ground and our common
ideal.</p>
<p>I hope to have a Big Science Fiction Week
with your help.—Conrad H. Ruppert, 113
North Superior Street, Angola, Indiana.</p>
<div class="center" style="margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 1.5em; font-size: 105%;">To the Readers of Astounding Stories:</div>
<p>At the present there exists in the United
States an organization the purpose of which
is to spread the gospel of Science and Science
Fiction, the Science Correspondence Club. I
am writing this to induce the readers of
Astounding Stories to join us. After reading
this pick up your pen or take the cover from
your typewriter and send in an application
for membership to our Secretary, Raymond
A. Palmer, 1431-38th St., Milwaukee, Wisconsin,
or to our President, Aubrey Clements,
6 South Hillard St., Montgomery, Alabama.
They will forward application blanks to you
and you will belong to the only organization
in the world that is like it.</p>
<p>The Club was formed by twenty young men
from all over the U. S. We have a roll of
almost 100, all over the world. Its expressed
purpose has been to help the cause of Science
Fiction, and to increase the knowledge of
Science. It also affords the advantage of being
able to express your ideas in all fields.</p>
<p>The Preamble of the Constitution which
we have worked out reads: "We, the members
of this organization, in order to promote
the advancement of Science in general among
laymen of the world through the use of discussion
and the creation and exchange of new
ideas, do ordain and establish this organization
for the Science Correspondence Club."</p>
<p>Article Two reads: "The institution will remain
an organization to establish better co-ordination
between the scientifically inclined
laymen of the world, regardless of sex, creed,
color, or race. There will be no restrictions
as to age, providing the member can pass an<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[130]</SPAN></span>
examination which shall be prepared by the
membership committee."</p>
<p>The Club will also publish a monthly bulletin,
to which members may contribute. It
will also publish clippings, articles, etc., dealing
with science.</p>
<p>The membership will have no definite limit
and the correspondence will be governed by
the wishes of each member.</p>
<p>Need more be said?</p>
<p>I almost forgot to say that we have two of
the best Science Fiction authors as active
members, and three more who are doing their
best, but because of such work they cannot
be active.</p>
<p>I hope my appeal bears fruit and that we
shall hear from you soon.—Conrad H. Ruppert.</p>
</div>
<div class="lnl"><i>But—Most Everybody Prefers the
Smaller Size—and Price!</i></div>
<div class="blockquote"><p>Dear Editor:</p>
<p>Last night I was passing a newsstand and
saw your magazine. I bought it then and
there. I do not read any other stories except
the fantastic stories. Astounding Stories
looks all right, but may I make a suggestions?
Why not increase the size of the magazine to
that of Miss 1900 or Forest and Stream? It
would certainly look better! You could also
raise your price to twenty-five cents. Please
print as many stories as possible by the following
authors: Ray Cummings, Edgar Rice
Burroughs, Murray Leinster, Edmond Hamilton,
A. Hyatt Verrill, Stanton A. Coblentz,
Ed Earl Repp and Harl Vincent.</p>
<p>My favorite type of story is the interplanetary
one. I wish you the best of luck in
your new venture.—Stephen Takacs, 303 Eckford
Street, Brooklyn, N. Y.</p>
</div>
<div class="lnl">"<i>First Copy Wonderful</i>"</div>
<div class="blockquote"><p>Dear Editor:</p>
<p>I have read the first copy of Astounding
Stories and think it wonderful. I am very
much interested in science fiction. I prefer
interplanetary stories and would like to see
many of them in the new magazine. Your
authors are fine. The ones I like particularly
are Ray Cummings, Captain S. P. Meek, and
Murray Leinster. I wonder if I could subscribe
to Astounding Stories? Will you let
me know? Good luck to the new magazine.—Donald
Sisler, 3111 Adams Mill Road, Washington,
D. C.</p>
</div>
<div class="lnl"><i>Congratulations</i></div>
<div class="blockquote"><p>Dear Editor:</p>
<p>Allow me to congratulate you upon the
starting of your new magazine, Astounding
Stories. Have just finished reading the first
issue and it is fine. While the class of stories
that you publish do not appeal to all, I feel
quite sure that there are many like myself
who will welcome your publication and wish
it all success.—R. E. Norton, P. O. Box 226,
Ashtabula, Ohio.</p>
</div>
<div class="minispace"> </div>
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />